The Road To Glory

Download as pdf or txt
Download as pdf or txt
You are on page 1of 185

The Road to Glory:

An Autobiography

By

Johann Melchizedek Peter


© Copyright 2017 by Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights
reserved. No part of this book may be reproduced or transmitted
in any form or by any means, electronic or mechanical, including
photocopying, recording or by any information storage and
retrieval system, without permission in writing from the
publisher.

This PDF copy of this book has been provided free for those who
can’t afford it in order that they may be blessed and grow
spiritually. Please feel free to donate whatever amounts you can
afford towards the upkeep of our ministry.

Donations can be made via Pay Pal to


[email protected].
Please refer to the partners page of our website for other methods
of transacting donations:

Johann Ministries
GPO Box 330
Canberra
ACT 2601, Australia.

Website: www.johannministries.com
Email: [email protected]

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 2


Introduction
Around 20th April 2017 to 2nd May 2017, I went into a 43-day fast which
was the second 40-day fast for the year 2017, the first being the usual 40
days fast from 1st January to 8th February every year. During the midst of the
43 days fast, I was taken into a Quantum Time dimension and saw that there
were three periods in my earthly life when Quantum time was connected as
one time zone: 18th September 1957, 18th September 1987, and the month of
May 2017. There were all operating on one Quantum time zone like the
operation of the 40 days of Noah’s flood, to the seven-year Tribulation to
the one day at the end of the Millennium.

I was physically born on 18th September 1987 (my mother was taken
through a time loop around 3:15am on 18 Sept of both years 1957 and 1987)
and then a part of me was separated and taken back to 1957 (in this
biography now recorded as Quantum time experiences) to experience life
and training on earth, another part of me was taken into the heavenly realms
and was trained in heavenly things – the vision of seeing two of me at the
Throne room on page 30 was part of this side effect; page 33 describes the
special day of 18th September 1987). During the 43 days fast which covers
the month of May, the merging of my two halves came to take place, a
renewal of youth back to thirty years took place, and I come into my
physical fullness on 18th September 2017 starting like Jesus at the age of
thirty..

Like all spiritual experiences, I was astounded by what was taking place
and in May 2017 as the merging of my two halves took place, I begin to
remember the spiritual training I had for 30 years in heaven from 1987 to
2017. The Lord said that this was necessary for the training and preparation
of the Voice that Cries at Midnight. This supernatural calling to fulfil the
Scriptures of Isaiah 41:1-6; 46:10-11 and Matthew 25:6 required a special
supernatural and natural training for ministry, and my life, calling and
ministry will be completed by 18th September 2060, and will return to
heaven the following day on 19th September 2060.
In May 2017 merging of both parts of me, I remembered all the things
learned in heaven and the earthly things now feel like a faint memory in
comparison. It felt like I just came down from heaven in May 2017. In time,
I will share more of the things of heaven. This book records both the
Quantum natural time stories, and will finish with the Quantum spiritual
time manifestations and stories.

Johann Melchizedek Peter

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 3


The Quantum Time Ten Years of
the Word
1976 to 1986

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 4


Chapter 1
The Call to Ministry
It was in the early hours of the morning, between 4am to 6am, that I saw a
light shine all around me. Immediately, I felt an awesome presence that
made me fall to my knees. I felt deep conviction under the holiness of that
presence. Tears started forming in my eyes as I felt a love that I have never
felt before. It was the love of God. For some time, all I could do was weep
before the Lord. I had no words to speak in His divine presence. Then like
from afar, I heard the cries of souls in the darkness of hell. Oh the agonies
and cries were beyond description. It made me cry more. As the tears
flowed copiously down my cheeks, I heard a still small voice that asked me,
“Do you want to follow the Lord and help these souls? Come and follow me
and I will teach you to minister to these.” At that moment, I only felt one
answer coming from deep within my heart, “I will, Lord. I will follow You.”
More tears flowed as I felt a deep peace fill my heart. When I looked up, I
saw a star shining over the area where I was praying. My heart was singing
when Aurlieus and James, who prayed with me on the roof top of that
apartment every morning, came and joined the morning prayer. We had
been meeting regularly for morning prayer for several months.

Aurlieus and James sensed that something had happened that morning.
When I told them what took place and how the Lord was calling me into the
ministry, they encouraged me to follow the Lord’s call. That was the middle
of 1975 and I was already doing some study courses in Singapore. When I
broke the news to my father later that day, he was very upset and angry. He
threatened to disown me and wanted to drive me out of the house. Not
knowing what else to do about my call, I consulted with the Baptist Church
pastor in Johor Bahru where I was attending. He and his wife, Agnes, were
one of the most gracious couples I have ever met. He took me under his
wings and guided me in applying for the Baptist Theological Seminary in
Penang. The months following were filled with many memorable times that
I spent with him as he encouraged me to play an active role in the youth
ministry. We had many meetings and the one that stood out in my mind was
an all-night of prayer that we organized in the premises of the Baptist
church. We prayed, we cried and there were times when the joy of the Lord
would fill us and we laughed out loud for joy. Not having much extra
clothes, one of the brothers gave me two new blue shirts used by factory
workers and Aurlieus took me to Singapore and bought me a pair of red
jeans.

When the time came for me to leave for Seminary, Pastor Albert arranged
for me to preach at the Sunday main service. I was so concerned that I

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 5


should be saying the right things from the Bible that I literally wrote my
whole sermon out. That evening I stood at the pulpit and avoided looking at
the congregation by just reading out from my prepared sermon. To my utter
surprise, the people in the congregation started to cry. Everyone was in tears
and the presence of the Lord was in our midst. I, too, began to cry when I
saw the presence of the Lord. With tears in his eyes, Pastor Albert prayed
over me and officially sent me off from his church. I will never forget the
kindness of this pastor and his wife who took me in like their son and
encouraged me to follow the call of God.

Over the next few days, I packed all my belongings into one little suitcase
and my father, who had calmed down by that time, drove me to the railway
station to send me off to Penang. I put on a brave face as I said good bye to
all the people who had come to see me off. As the train pulled away from
town, the tears flowed freely as I started on the journey of faith not knowing
what the future had in store for me. I had no promise of financial support
from anyone, nor had I ever been on my own before. At nineteen, I had
turned down a bright future in the secular world to follow a call that still
rings in my heart. I knew that Jesus was real and that if I ever had any need,
He would take care of me. All my worldly possessions were in the little
suitcase next to me.

Arrival in Penang

When I arrived in Penang, Dr Thomas the president of the Baptist


Seminary picked me up and brought me to the dormitory. The physical site
of the Baptist Seminary was very beautiful. It was right next to the beach on
a steep hill slope. I had been accepted on probation because I was underage
for the Seminary only accepted those who were twenty-one years old and
above. When they read my testimony and with the strong recommendation
of Pastor Albert, they were convinced that I had a strong call to serve God
in the fulltime ministry. The next day, I was invited to have a meal with the
Thomas family. It was the first time that I had eaten with an American
family and the first time that I tasted mashed potatoes and other Western
food. Ruth Thomas, the wife of Dr Thomas, was a very spiritual woman and
was very gifted in music. Dr Thomas loved to teach the Panorama of the
Bible, especially the Old Testament. He walked with a limp and he had a
great love for the Lord. Professor Roger Capps was an intellectual and he
taught New Testament Greek. There were several other American
missionaries who were professors in the Baptist College. They all had a
great love for the Lord and together taught most of the courses in the Baptist
Seminary during the first two years of my time there. In the second and third
years there, more local Asians became teachers in the Seminary and when

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 6


Dr Thomas and his family left, Dr Siao took over the presidency of the
Seminary.

In the first year of my Seminary, I met two other students from East
Malaysia. They were Michael Duis and Annie Tuah. Something about their
lives and conversation drew me to them. They had a hunger for the Lord
especially for revival like me. We used to hang out together in fellowship
and prayers. Michael spoke of many of the visitations of the Lord in his life
and ministry before he came to Seminary. He was a powerful evangelist to
the Kadazan people and had experienced angelic visitations and miracles.
Annie was always prayerful and prophetic. One day when she was praying
for me, she cried and said that I was going to face much persecution. I
hungered for what they had and every day would spend a long time on my
knees crying for revival.

Salvation of Family

It was during one of the times of personal prayer that I found myself
speaking in a language that I did not understand. Not being a Pentecostal, I
did not know that it was the baptism in the Spirit. In the first year that I was
in Seminary, I was determined to seek the Lord with all my heart. That year
in 1976, I took on a forty day fast on bread and water. The lady who
prepared the meals for the students was so concerned for me that she asked
about my welfare when she saw me missing at the table. She thought that I
did not have enough money to pay for the food. Indeed, that first month
when all my money ran out, I trusted the Lord for the next month’s
payment. To my utter surprise, every month since I left home, it was my
father who faithfully sent me M$150 a month to cover my expenses. In spite
of all the scolding that I received from him for following the call of the
Lord, he still supported me financially. I used to cry every month when I
received the money order from him.

One day, I cried for hours saying to the Lord that my father was
supporting me when he did not know anything about Jesus Christ. I cried
because I wanted him to know the same Jesus whom I met. During one of
those times when I had cried and prayed for my father, I felt a deep peace
enter my heart. As I walked from the room to the choir practice in the music
room, I knew that my father would come to know Jesus. At the end of each
year, the Seminary choir would do a tour through various Baptist churches
in Malaysia and Singapore. When we were in Johor Bahru, my father
attended the choir presentation held at the premises of the Presbyterian
church. The choir continued a few more days in Singapore and when it
dispersed for the year end holidays, I returned home for a few weeks. I was
sitting on the sofa of my home when my father told me that when he came

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 7


home from the choir presentation, he had a dream where he saw himself at
the foot of a huge cross. I told my father that Jesus was showing himself to
him. It was then that my father told me that he had been reading one of the
tracts that I had left in the house and had been praying the prayer at the end
of the tract for months. It was a prayer to accept Jesus into his life. When I
asked him when he started doing this, I found that it was about the time that
I had felt the peace of God in my heart about my father coming to know
Jesus.

Subsequently, my mother also had a dream about heaven. She told me that
she was in a most beautiful place that was as beautiful as the dawn of the
morning. In it was a path with many trees. She said that the trees were so
beautiful and each leaf was particularly pretty. She was standing on the path
admiring the beauty of the leaves when she heard a voice that said that I had
gone through this path ahead of her. She knew then the reality of God and
became a committed believer in Jesus. My sister, Betty, also had an
experience of the Lord in her life sometime after I came to know the Lord. I
used to accompany my father to bring my sister to the Chinese medicine hall
to buy Chinese medicine for her because she experienced a lump in her
breast. One day, she saw in a dream a white knife come and cut her, and a
black substance was taken out from her. The next day, when she woke up,
her lump was gone. When the Lord also called her to the ministry, she
started in the Tamil Bible School and was a blessing there. When my
mother at first opposed her going to fulltime ministry, the Lord gave my
mother a dream. In the dream she saw me and my sister Betty. We were
both holding a piece of red cloth. My cloth was opened but Betty’s was not.
When my mother told me the dream, I explained to her that the Lord had
also called Betty to the ministry and that she needed to let her go. Her
unopened cloth meant that she had not yet followed the call. When my
mother heard that, she immediately stopped her opposition and consented to
let Betty go into fulltime ministry. One by one all my family members came
to know Jesus in answer to the prayers of both Betty and myself, the first
two who came to know Jesus in our family.

Ministry in Bukit Mertajam

During the first year of ministry, I was actively travelling to a nearby town
for weekend ministry at the Bukit Mertajam Baptist Church. As always, I
called people to pray for revival for the church. A small group of us would
gather together after Sunday service to pray for revival. After some months,
the Lord started manifesting to some in the group. They were getting dreams
and visions. Some who opposed the meetings were told in a dream not to
oppose it as it was of the Lord. It was during these meetings that the
presence of the Lord would sometimes grow so strong that all of us would

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 8


melt in tears at the presence of the Lord. During some of the meetings, some
of them received the baptism in the Spirit with speaking in tongues without
anyone laying hands on them. There were some who had visions of heaven,
while others heard the voice of the Lord direct them in situations in their
lives. The presence of the Lord was growing stronger and stronger with each
meeting.

During some of these weekend travel times, I was very short of finances.
Once I had just enough money to travel there and did not have enough bus
fare to return. Yet by faith, I was determined to go on knowing that the Lord
would not fail anyone who trusted in Him completely, especially when one
is serving Him. I used to stay in one of the rooms at the side of the church
and was sitting down alone that day without any money for food. Just at that
moment, one of the church sisters brought in a huge Chinese steam bun. I
accepted it graciously and when she left, I fell on my knees and wept and
cried before the Lord, thankful for His provision. The next day, on Monday,
I was wondering how I was going to get back to Penang as I had no bus fare
and I did not want to tell anyone except the Lord. A brother came by on his
motorbike and said that he was going to Penang. He asked whether I would
like to go with him. I immediately gave thanks to the Lord and was taken all
the way back to the Seminary. Later when I shared the testimony of how the
Lord provided for me, word got back to the church and the committee in the
church decided to start giving me some regular offering which helped me in
my travel expenses to the church. At the peak of the revival prayer meetings
in the church, there was a decision made to stop the prayer meetings. When
the decision was made, I decided to also stop going to the church and started
looking for another place for ministry.

Ministry in Kangar, Perlis

One of the senior students of the Seminary told me of the need for more
help in a northern town of Malaysia as he would soon graduate and leave for
East Malaysia where he was from. Towards the end of the first year and
during my second year in Seminary, I started travelling to Kangar every
weekend. It was a two hour bus ride with a change of bus in Sungei Patani
on Fridays. I always enjoyed the trip as the sun would usually be setting
when we were two thirds of the way there. The brilliant colours of the
setting sun against the silhouette of the rice fields and little hills were scenes
that stirred my heart in praises to God. In Perlis Baptist church, there was a
group of young people who were as hungry for the Lord as I was. Before
long, we were having prayer meetings for revival. Michael Duis also used to
join me for the weekend ministries to this church. We used to sit around the
table tennis table, which was also used as a normal table to serve food, and

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 9


sang praises to God regularly or talk into the wee hours of the night about
the things of God.

On one of those nights, Michael was praying outside on the swing in front
of the church while the rest of us were fellowshipping around the table
tennis table. When he came in all of us saw a bright glow over his face. We
knew something supernatural had occurred and asked him about it. He told
us that he had seen a vision from the Lord. Another memorable incident was
when we were on holidays and spending it at the church premises. Michael
Duis, Choong Beng and myself were sleeping in one of the rooms upstairs
when I distinctly heard the voice of the Lord telling me to fast for three days
without food and water. When I came down in the morning, I told those
who were already sitting around the table tennis table having breakfast that I
was going to obey the Lord’s call to fast for three days without food and
water. When I told this to the group, Michael told me that he had an
impression to fast but did not do so. Choong Beng exclaimed that he also
heard the voice of the Lord to fast but when he came downstairs and saw the
Malaysian breakfast dish called “nasi lemak”, he just ate his delicious
breakfast. In the end, they all agreed that I should go on the fast and they
would all support me in prayer. This was my first experience of fasting three
days and three nights without food and water. The first day went without
incident and on the second day, although I felt weak, I had a vision of the
Lord at night.

The Vision of the Call

I was taken to a wide plain between two mountains. There on the plain
was an enormous building under construction. Only the pillars and structure
of the building had been laid. The walls and other parts of the building were
not completed yet. Each of those pillars were the size of a six lane highway
with some bigger than that. It was a very tall building which seemed to
reach into the sky. I was placed at the foot of the building and looking up,
saw a group of people standing about halfway up on the building on one of
the huge pillars. They were all waving to me from above. I recognized some
of them. They were the previous generation Asian ministers whom God had
used mightily. I recognized two of them as John Sung and Watchman Nee.
When I came out of that vision, I did not fully understand what this vision
meant. I heard the voice of God speak and was told that the pillars are
pillars of prayer and that the building was the church with the two
mountains symbolising the first and second coming of Christ. Scriptures
from the gospel of John came to me when I came out from the vision:

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 10


John 4: 35-38
Behold, I say to you, lift up your eyes and look at the fields, for they are
already white for harvest. And he who reaps receives wages, and gathers
fruit for eternal life, that both he who sows and he who reaps may rejoice
together. For in this saying is true: ‘One sows and another reaps.’ I sent
you to reap that for which you have not laboured; others have laboured and
you have entered into their labours.

It was nearly fifteen years later that I understood that in this vision, God
was calling me to continue to build and complete the work of others who
have gone before me, especially John Sung and Watchman Nee. The work
of completing the walls of the church belongs to all of us in this present
revival who are called to the fivefold ministry. On the third day of the fast,
when it was completed at the stroke of midnight, the sisters in the church
had prepared many sumptuous foods. However, I could not eat and told
them that the hunger for the Lord was still too strong, everyone wept and
cried and felt convicted. We had a great prayer meeting instead and had the
food in the morning.

Events of 1978

During the third year of Seminary, God opened a door for me to be a


student pastor in Reservoir Garden Baptist Church in Penang. As usual I
found a group of those who were hungry for God and we started to pray for
revival. During these times, the Charismatic revival was in full swing all
over the world and churches in Malaysia were beginning to feel its impact.
Many in the Baptist churches were receiving the baptism in the Holy Spirit
while others took a very strong stand in opposition. It was during this time
that a group of us who were students touched by the Charismatic movement
started a prayer meeting. New students like Teong and others who were
open to the teaching of the baptism in the Spirit were friendly to us.
Unfortunately, there were those who were also opposed and among them
were those in the Chinese stream, one of whom was my dorm mate in my
third year. One day, he saw me praying in the room for Teong, with my
hands laid upon his head, and he reported me to the administrators of the
Seminary. The faculty at that time was not open to the Charismatic
movement and before long three of us were given letters asking us to leave
the Seminary. The letter given to me stated that I had practiced “extreme
Charismatic practices” which at that time was praying for another student
with the laying on of hands. I was in tears when I saw the letter. I had given
up everything to serve God fulltime and was only a few credits from
finishing and graduating. Throughout this incident, I was grateful that the
local church continued to support me.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 11


Soon however, the Charismatic movement also affected the local church.
There was also much doctrinal debate over these issues like the baptism in
the Spirit, healing and the gifts of the Holy Spirit. Some in the church
wanted to remain outside the Charismatic movement while others wanted to
embrace it into the church. The chairman, Mr Choo, was favourable to the
Charismatic movement as he had a personal experience of the baptism in the
Holy Spirit. The divisions within the church spilled into their meetings and
the church especially called a General Meeting to consider this issue. After
everyone had spoken their mind, the issue was put to a vote. In the end,
when there was an impasse, the final vote was that both doctrines for and
against were to be allowed in the church. Mr Choo was pleased with the
decision because he counted it as a win since Charismatic teaching is now
officially allowed. I considered it a loss because the contrary teachings
would also be allowed and was not sure if I could handle two contradictory
teachings within the same church. I submitted my resignation the next day.

Vision of Skinny Spirit Man

A small band of Christians from the local church continued to meet and
pray together with me in a rented house. Together, we formed the Alleluia
Christian Missions with a vision of establishing fivefold ministers who
would go to and fro in the land ministering to the body of Christ. By that
time I had met and known Amy for two years in the Seminary who, despite
pressure from the principal, stood with me and later became my wife in
1981. She asked God to show her whether I was the one for her and God
showed her a vision of thousands of people clothed in white gathering to
hear me. She knew then that God had called her to be my life partner and to
stand spiritually with me. During the period from 1978 to 1979, I started
learning about the principles of meditating on God’s Word through reading
out loud personalized Scriptures. I had a frightening vision of what my spirit
man looked like – it was skinny and without strength – and it shook me into
finding ways to strengthen my inner man. I was in a bit of a shock because
at that time I already had three years of theological training and yet my
spirit man was not really fed. And I was an extremely good student who did
well in all my academic theological studies. If that was my true spiritual
condition, then what would a Christian without the knowledge of the word
be like?

I took one whole year not reading anything except the Word of God. Most
days, I spent about 14 to 16 hours a day just reading the Bible and reading
out loud personalized Scriptures. The Word of God was my constant
thought from morning till night. One day about two thirds of the way into
this remarkable year of the Word, I felt something imparted into my mind. It
was like a light bulb had been turned on in my mind. Suddenly the written

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 12


word became clear and the revelations would leap out at me as I read the
Bible. I experienced what the disciples experienced when Jesus opened their
understanding that they might comprehend the Scriptures (Luke 24:45). It
was like having a totally different mind. Even up to this day, twenty-eight
years later, the impact of that one year of soaking up the Word still
continues to affect my life in every positive way.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 13


Chapter 2
The Travelling Ministry
Doors began opening in 1979 when we started our own magazine,
‘Alleluia’, that was distributed free to the body of Christ. We also had our
first little booklet published called, “God’s Meditation Food.” It was a small
tiny extract from my file of meditation Scriptures that I had used during the
one year saturation of the Word. Ministry doors opened and some of us
went in teams to different churches and denominations that were hungry for
more of God. It was during these times that we boldly “experimented” in the
things of the Spirit like praying for hours in tongues, learning to recognise
the voice of God and operating in the word of knowledge in healing. At that
time, there were very few local ministers who preached the word and
operated in the gifts of the Holy Spirit. Most of the people who drew crowds
of hungry Christians were preachers who came from overseas, primarily
Americans.

Ministry in the FGBMFI

Through the testimonies that we published in our magazines and the


distribution of our little booklet, God opened a door of ministry to the Full
Gospel Businessmen’s Fellowship International (FGBMFI) local chapters.
God used them in spearheading the Charismatic movement in Malaysia and
in Singapore. This ministry was led by a dynamic doctor and leader, Dr
Peter Tong. He had a team of influential businessmen who made a great
impact on both traditional and Pentecostal churches. Among them were
Timothy Phua, an accountant with a great love for the Word, Ang Chui Lai,
a lawyer with a gift for words and prophecy, Michael who loved to worship
and many others. They started the Abundant Life Centre in Kuala Lumpur
which was usually filled during lunch hours with working people from all
walks of life. Famous speakers from overseas preached regularly at this
non-denominational centre.

On the first day of ministry there, God moved and many saw the word of
knowledge and the gift of healing operated by a young Malaysian preacher.
The presence of the Lord was there in the meetings. Hundreds of doors
opened after that. Very memorable were the times of ministry in the homes
of Dr Lim and Ang Chui Lai. The crowds of people overflowed to the
outside of their homes and the Spirit of the Lord moved mightily. People
were hungry for more ministry and each time I travelled down from Penang
for ministry I used to stay in the homes of Dr Peter Tong, Timothy Phua,
Ang Chui Lai and Dr Lim on different occasions. Dr Peter Tong, who was
the president of FGBMFI at that time, took a liking to me and he would take

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 14


me to all the major meetings of the FGBMFI in Malaysia and in Singapore.
For a time, it looked like the ministry was growing both in its influence and
its impact on the whole country. Many lives were touched and changed by
the ministry. Some of them have remained fervent supporters of the ministry
since then. There were many healings and miracles, among them were
people healed of poor eyesight.

Opposition to the Word of Faith

It was around the early 1980s that opposition against teachings like the
Word of Faith by Kenneth Hagin was spreading throughout the world.
Although we had discovered the importance of meditation and the
confession of God’s Word on our own through our own spiritual
experiences, for some reason, because of the similarities of the emphasis on
the literal application of the Word of God to all aspects of life and ministry,
we became the forefront ministry that was bringing the Word of Faith to
Asia. The Assemblies of God denomination locally came out with a united
stand against the Word of Faith movement. Soon the FGBMFI would also
have to choose what their stand would be in relationship to the Word of
Faith movement. Mr Choo, the local Baptist church chairman in Penang,
had requested a meeting with the leaders of FGBMFI in regard to me.
Together all of us met at the Alleluia Christian Missions rented home and
although there were no grounds for accusations, it turned into a character
issue of differing personalities. Being young and only twenty-two years of
age at that time, I knew nothing better than to weep and cry. That night after
everyone left, the tears continued to flow like water. For the first time, I
experienced what it was like to weep for 24 hours. Soon after that, I was
told that the next Saturday, where I had a pre-arranged meeting at the
Abundant Life Centre, was to be my last meeting there. At the end of that
meeting and after everyone had left, I knelt at the altar and wept my heart
out. I did not realize that the cries were loud enough to attract the attention
of a young doctor who was there. I did not know how long it was that the
tears flowed like a steady river of water but when I had poured my heart out
to God in prayer, there was a pool of water formed by the tears at the place
where I knelt. When I got up, I saw the young doctor beside me and he, too
was in tears. He told me that when he heard my tearful prayers, he came and
knelt beside me and suddenly felt like a supernatural burden of prayer came
upon him. It was so strong that he was brought down to his knees and he
said that he had never in his life cried with such tears in prayer.

Timothy Phua welcomed me into his home and encouraged me to


continue on in the ministry of the Word. He had a deep love for the Word
and there were many nights when I had stayed in his home and we would
talk about the Word of God until the morning came. He loved discussing

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 15


doctrines and view points from the Word of God and bringing them to their
logical conclusion. It was like iron sharpening iron in our many Scriptural
discussions. My young mind was sharpened by the hours of Scriptural
discussions that we had. His wife, Mary, was a woman of good deeds. She
was a very helpful and practical lady who loved to serve others. Another
important family to us were Dr Lim and his wife. They were both Baptists at
that time but they had a genuine love for the work of the ministry. They had
even prepared a “prophet’s room” and had welcomed me to stay with them
any time when I was in town. Through all the years of ministry to the
present time, they have been a constant support to us no matter what the
circumstances were. Dr Lim was always a quiet man of few words and Sis
Lim was a woman of deep prayer. If not for their persistent and constant
help, at times with great sacrifice, through some of the most difficult times
of the ministry and personal life, my wife and I would not be where we are
today. When my wife and I were married on May 10th 1981, we chose both
of them to officiate at our wedding.

We took several months off from ministry in 1981 and my wife and I
travelled to the United States to visit various ministries: John Osteen,
Kenneth Hagin, etc. We were accompanied by Albert Antoni, who had been
touched by the ministry and had become one of the strong supporters of our
ministry. In Houston, we stayed in the guest mission quarters of Lakewood
Church arranged by the mission director of their church, William Dearman.
We went with the gardener of the church there for street witnessing. Of all
the churches that we visited in the United States of America, this was the
most friendly and warm church. The genuine love that John Osteen had for
people and for missions was flowing out strongly through all the members
of his church. We were very touched by the warmth and genuineness of the
people. We made an appointment to see Ps John Osteen and while there he
laid hands on us and prayed over us. I felt a pastoral anointing came upon
me from that day onwards and while in the mission quarters at the church
site, I had a vision to start a church.

The Ministry in Kuala Lumpur

Upon returning to Malaysia, we spoke about our desire to plant a church


and together with Timothy Phua and Jason, The Word Centre was organised
as a teaching centre and church. We also completed our physical move from
Penang to base our ministry in Kuala Lumpur. It was at the Word Centre
that we had long teaching sessions and also all night prayers on Friday
nights. The presence of the Lord was there and the church grew. It started in
the office of Timothy Phua and grew to having its own rented premises at
the third level of the same building complex. Some of those from the
Penang ministry came and joined us. It was at the Word Centre that we

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 16


sometimes had all day and all night reading through the Bible sessions and
developed much of the systematic and depth of teaching. We also
experimented in the depths of prayer and fasting. On one occasion, I wanted
to know what it was like to spend an extended time in prayer in tongues. I
prayed in tongues for 48 hours with small breaks to the restrooms or for
drinking water. At the end of that time, it was like living in an open vision.
It was like the eyes were seeing both the physical and the spiritual at the
same time. It was not easy to function in the natural. The effects wore off
slowly over the next few days.

At the peak of the ministry of The Word Centre in 1986, the Lord
appeared in a vision to me. It was in the morning of January 17th 1986. I was
seated on my favourite sofa chair upstairs in the rented house praying in
tongues for hours, which was my usual routine in the morning. About a
week before this, at the same place of prayer, I saw a vision of a principal
territorial demon and after rebuking it and seeing it flee, thought nothing of
it. On that morning, I was just deep in prayer and enjoying the presence of
the Lord when suddenly a bright light came and formed right in front of me.
I felt an extremely strong presence of the Lord and somehow my spirit
discerned that it was the Lord Jesus standing in front of me. Looking
towards the bright light standing in front of me, I stretched out my hand and
said to the Lord, “I am ready.” In my mind, I thought that the Lord was
going to take me for an experience in heaven, something that I had been
praying about for some years prior to that moment. The Lord smiled at me
and said that it was not time yet, instead He spoke to me about the anointing
of the Holy Spirit. It took me two more years to put some of the things He
said into my book, “The Anointing of the Holy Spirit.”

After the Lord left, I was in the Spirit most of the time and could hardly
go about my natural activities. I told no one about this and that night I could
not sleep because the Spirit of the Lord was heavy upon me. I sat at the edge
of the bed and continued praying and worshipping the Lord. I lost track of
time and did not know whether it was still night or early morning when I
saw a ball of light come into the room. It came and stood in front of me but
remained a ball of light. The presence of the Lord was there in the room
with me. Then I said, “Lord, I know that it is you. I love You, Lord.”
Immediately, the ball of light spread out into the words “Holiness unto the
Lord” and it moved closer to me. When it touched me on my forehead, I
was caught up in the Spirit.

It seemed as if I was suspended in space and looking down upon the earth.
As I looked over the surface of the earth, I felt a great surge of the love that
God had for the people on the earth. It was a deep pulsating love that took
over my entire being. It is very hard to describe what it felt like but I will

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 17


try. Whenever we pray for people especially for healing from a sickness that
has caused much pain, we feel an inward sense of compassion towards
them. Multiply that sensation a billion, billion times and that would be part
of what it felt like. It was as if God’s heart of love was embracing the whole
world such that if one little sparrow on earth were to fall to the ground and
die, it would feel like a great thud of pain in God’s very own heart. Every
thing on the earth that was not perfect, everything on the earth that was
causing suffering and pain, and everything on earth that does not breathe in
line with the Will of God was causing a great sensation of sorrow and grief
within that love. With the capacity for love comes the capacity to feel the
pain of the object of one’s love. It felt like my entire heart was being torn,
out of love and compassion for mankind. I could hardly stand moments
longer in that great ocean of love. Oh the love that God has for the world! I
wept. I cried. The tears flowed like a river. I knew experientially now what
it means when the Bible says, “For God SO LOVED the world that He gave
His only begotten Son that whoever believes in Him should not perish but
have everlasting life (John 3:16).

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 18


Chapter 3
Extracts from my diary in 1980s
The following extracts from my diary, which I kept intermittently, is given
word for word (except for editing out the mention of very personal matters),
so the reader can receive a glimpse into my inner thoughts and desires that
were driving my life during the first decade of my ministry.

18th August 1980

I long for closeness with God. God must be beyond all man’s definition.
The definition of God would only be a touch or a glimpse of who He really
is. But I do know that God wants me to know Him as a person even though
my small human mind might not understand all of Him.
I believe that all the healing ministries around the world up to this day
have as yet not really fully touched but the hem of God’s glory and power. I
would like, O God in Jesus Name, to walk with you the closest possible for
a man on this earth to do so.
I know God hears and sees my inner thoughts and will answer
accordingly.
Behind all the miracles we wrought in Jesus Name. Behind all the success
we receive in Christ’s ministry is the heart of love – the very heart of God. It
is all because He loves us; He loves and wants us well. He wants us to know
He loves us. He wants us to reach out to Him and return His love.
All that I am today was and is the result of what Christ has done and is
doing through this body. There is nothing at all which I have actually done.
There is in me a deep longing for God. No definition of God no matter
how close to Truth. No book or writing of any man of God can ever satisfy
this deep hunger for God. Only God Himself can satisfy this longing. Only
the personal manifestation of Jesus in all His glory of the Father can satisfy
this heart of mine. Only experiences satisfy the heart, knowledge only
creates more hunger for what knowledge itself points to.
The experience of God in man, with man is indefinable. It defies all our
explanation. No definition can satisfy the spiritual hunger of man for that
personal experience with God. For to experience Him is to know Him. I
cannot explain it but God’s working in man is in a mystery. There is glory
that cannot be explained but only to be experienced. It does something to a
man. We cannot pinpoint exactly what it does to a man but we can see the
results. We may try to explain it and try to pinpoint it but the fact that we
cannot show forth the same glory that emits from a man who has the touch
of God, is sufficient argument to prove that we haven’t pinpointed it – for if
we had, we should have it to show in experience.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 19


It takes our complete death and yielding to bring forth all of God’s
manifestation in us. The God that we think we know, many times is above
out highest thought or concept about Him. The God of our definitions will
never be exactly the True and Living God for in this world we cannot fully
know Him; and our definitions so sufficient in this world would prove
insufficient and full of misconceptions if viewed from heaven’s side. In this
world, we can only gear our minds to remain in an unlimiting position as
regard to God. I know God looks down in amusement as He sees me write
these things.

21st August 1980

God give me tears to cry for Your creation. Tears of compassion. Tears of
love. For I know that tears touch and proceed from the well springs of our
heart.
A broken contrite spirit, O Lord is what you use. Your glory dwells, O
Lord, upon a broken and contrite spirit. God does not use a person because
he is doctrinally perfect but because the person has love and compassion.
Lord, I have no tears of my own. Give me your tears to cry.

22nd August 1980

Teach me, O Lord, the infinite worth of a human soul. Teach me, O Lord,
the greatness of Your love. A love that breaks. Father God, Your heart was
broken when Jesus died for us. When Your only begotten Son was cut off
from You. When He cried for You and though You wanted to help, yet for
our sake, refrained because of us. Teach me, O Lord, the love that could
cause Jesus to give His life for me, to leave His throne in glory to come
among us sinful men. Teach me, O Lord, Your great love. Let me have it
according to Ephesians 3 and John 17. Let this same love that broke Your
heart, that broke Jesus heart, break mine, too. That I may remain ever a
broken, humble and contrite spirit before You. In Jesus Name I ask.

30th August 1980

I thought of what Paul meant when he said that we are seated in heavenly
places in Christ Jesus. My spirit, soul and body are here so how am I seated
in heavenly places? As I pondered, God showed in Ephesians Chapter 1 that
Christ was risen above and He is our head and the church is His body and
the fullness of Him. In the sense that the body is related to the head, so am I
seated in heavenly places while my spirit, soul and my body are here. To
realize this blessing and authority that I have in Christ in heavenly places, I
only need to learn to let Christ be my head and learn to be His body. The
body does not decide, direct or initiate but only responds to what the head

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 20


commands. So I must learn to disregard my own self but to learn only to
respond and yield to Christ’s direction and commandments everyday,
twenty-four hours, in my life that Christ is transmitting daily.

5th December 1980

The Lord taught concerning hearing. It is not so much what we hear as to


how we hear. We hear the Bible taught – some receive it as a message,
others a word from God. The same Bible to one is a book, to another the
Word. Everything that we hear, if we will hear as attentively as possible, we
will learn much, especially in God’s Word.

4th March 1981

There is a sense of being not of this world that one must develop in order
to develop one’s love for Jesus. We must come to the place where we have
no lover but Jesus. No one but Jesus. Jesus our lover and Him only.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 21


The Quantum Time Ten Years of
the Spirit
1986 to 1996

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 22


Chapter 4
Expansion of Ministries
When the Lord appeared to me in January 1986, He did not tell me
anything about what was to happen nor about the changes that I was about
to experience. The Word Centre was growing rapidly and I suggested to
Timothy that we needed a bigger place. He thought that we should continue
maximising the use of the present premises. We could not reach an
agreement as there were five directors on the board of The Word Centre:
Timothy and his wife, my wife and I, and Jason Loh. Since we all would
have one vote each, Jason would have the deciding vote. Jason did not want
to take any side and we ended up calling for a decision to be made through
the second tier of leaders in the various committees. When I returned home
that day, I talked with some of the ministry team telling them how important
it was that we should make a decision to move into larger premises.
Somehow, one of them took it upon himself to speak to Timothy privately
allying himself against me. I felt betrayed as he was one of those whom I
trained and brought down from Penang. When I heard about what he had
done, I knew that the coming meeting with all the people involved was
going to be unpleasant as misunderstandings were already being brewed in
the background by various people. After much prayer, I chose not to be
present in the meeting but instead submitted my resignation. I had no
appetite to fight over the possession and control of an organisation. I
continue to be grateful for the wonderful time that I had with Timothy in the
formative years. His encouragement and steadfastness have been an
important part of my life.

Launching of Local Church and Fivefold Ministers

Two weeks later in June 1986, we advertised in the papers and launched
our new church, Tabernacle of Glory, in the premises of a rented hotel. One
hundred and fifty people gathered together for our first meeting. Every week
the Spirit of the Lord moved and we saw many miracles and deliverances.
In one particular case, a demon possessed person literally leapt onto the
platform and when the demon was cast out, he accepted the Lord and
became a follower of Jesus. As the church grew we moved from using hotel
premises on Sundays to renting an abandoned warehouse on top of a car
service centre in 1988. We renovated the place to seat 1,200 people. In
1989, I published our second book, “The Anointing of the Holy Spirit”
followed by a whole series of teaching books. The tape ministry was also
expanding and we were selling books and tapes by the thousands. It was
unusual in those days for a local Asian ministry to have their own ministry

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 23


and also in writing books. The Lord was blazing a trail for other fivefold
ministers to follow.

One of the highlights of that year was the coming of Benny Hinn to our
church. At that time, he had never been to Asia before and we especially
sent one of our Associate Pastors, Rustum Jeffrey, all the way to Orlando to
invite Benny Hinn over. He accepted and when he came to Malaysia, there
were thousands squeezed into the church premises and its overflow facilities
and thousands more who couldn’t get in. In 1989 and in 1990, we held
many Conferences and saw many international speakers come and go. Many
independent Charismatic churches were being established and we formed
the Fellowship of Charismatic Ministers (FCM) in order to encourage the
growth of local fivefold ministers. They came from all the various Asian
countries: Malaysia, Singapore, Thailand, Indonesia, India and as far away
as Korea. The Lord was blessing in every way and the ministry income from
donations, books and tapes was as large as and sometimes larger than that of
our local church. For the first time, it would have been possible for us to go
to any local venue or convention hall in Asia and know that thousands of
people would turn up just to be blessed by a local Asian ministry.

Ministry in Singapore

We used the income to continue to help various fivefold ministries. We


rented homes for the local pastors to stay in to help them with their
expenses. It was in the 1990s that we started travelling weekly to do a
teaching series in Singapore with about a thousand people turning up every
week on a Monday night to hear the Word of God. We promoted the local
churches and ministry by encouraging the local pastors who came to
minister together with us in praying for the people. One of our main
contacts was Ps Henry Yeo, his wife Jeannie, and Ps Joseph Prince whose
church, New Creation, was just growing from about a hundred and fifty
people at that time. It was a big challenge for their music team to do
worship for a thousand people but they always did well with Ps Joseph
Prince leading most of the time. We did the same everywhere we went to
minister, always promoting the local church ministries and giving them an
opportunity to minister in my meetings. For many of them it was the first
time they were moving from ministering to the tens and hundreds to
ministering to the thousands. We knew that the anointing for the thousands
would soon fall upon them.

My speaking schedule was booked two years ahead and many local
churches were calling for help. Every week I was travelling and speaking in
a different place while pastoring the local church in Kuala Lumpur. One of
those times was when I was already pre-scheduled to minister in the New

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 24


Creation church camp in Singapore in 1990. At that time Pastor Henry Yeo
was the Senior Pastor and the associate pastors were Pastor Ron, Pastor
Jedidiah and Pastor Joseph Prince. Unknown to me, there was a major
decision that was going to take place during and after the camp. The church
was about to fall apart at the seams as there were disagreements in the
pastoral leadership areas. In that particular camp as I continued preaching to
the church members at large, I also met separately with each of the four
pastors. After speaking to Pastor Ron and Pastor Jedidiah, I knew that they
were fully convinced that the only way forward for them was to break off
and start on their own. I managed to get everyone to agree that if that was to
be the course of action after the camp, then we should do it in a godly
manner with love by praying and sending forth Pastor Ron and Pastor
Jedidiah and allow the church members to go along with whichever ministry
they felt comfortable in. To the credit of all of them, they all consented to
the counsel I received from the Lord. Once that was agreed to, Pastor Joseph
Prince approached me individually and spoke to me at length about the
future of New Creation church. If the leadership structure remained as it
was, this problem would re-occur in the future. I knew that I needed to reach
out to Pastor Henry Yeo about a major church re-structuring.

I had a private talk with Pastor Henry Yeo and we both came to agree that
he needed to stand aside for another more pulpit type of ministry to ensure
growth in the church. In order to mitigate this process with the utmost
sensitivity and respect, a position as Administrative Pastor was created for
him and Pastor Joseph Prince was appointed the new Senior Pastor of New
Creation church. All this was arranged and re-structured on the final day of
the church camp with the blessing and sending out of Pastor Ron and Pastor
Jedidiah to start their own church ministry. To this day, I highly commend
the humility and graciousness of Pastor Henry Yeo. There are not many
founders and Senior Pastors who are willing to step aside to make room for
another associate who carries the gift of the pulpit ministry. There was a
time when I was sitting next to Pastor Henry in a major Conference
overseas, and as we looked up towards the stage of a local church which had
just lost one of its leaders, that he turned to me and said, “I am so glad that I
stepped out away from something which I did not have the gift and
anointing for; and into something in the background which I am more gifted
in.” Such is the graciousness of that man. With the church re-structure,
Pastor Joseph Prince was able to take the church into a growth expansion
phase which continues today. I rejoice to see the new heights in which he
has taken both the church and his personal ministry.

Towards the end of the teaching series in Singapore, we held a major


Worship Convention at the Harbour Pavilion in Singapore in July 1993.
During one of the many practice sessions that we had in that place, I was

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 25


told that Pastor Kong Hee wanted to meet up with me. At that time his
church was into the tens and hundreds and he was seeking to grow the
church into the thousands. We sat on the open seats at the Harbour Pavilion
talking about the things of God. I remember talking about how important the
pulpit ministry was in the establishment of a mega church. After some time
of sharing we had a prayer before the Lord. I distinctly remember when he
left, how hungry he was for God and how passionate he was about
preaching the Word of God to reach the lost. I am so glad that his ministry
and church has expanded into the thousands and now reaches around the
world. His deep passion to reach the lost has now instilled a similar passion
among a new generation who are growing up under his ministry.

Ministry in Sabah and Throne Room vision

After completing the ministry in Singapore, I was asked by Pastor William


Vun to do the same for East Malaysia and particularly, Kota Kinabalu,
where he was located. After much prayer, we began a weekly series of
teaching which impacted many lives. As always we also encouraged all the
local ministries who came to the meetings although Pastor William was the
principal organiser. In the midst of all these meetings, Pastor William, who
was an Anglican minister, launched the new church, Glory Christian Centre,
in 1994. At the end of the series of meetings, Pastor William told me, “You
have now set a very high standard for local ministers to follow. The local
people will now expect more from their ministers.” It was also in 1994
during one of the Conventions that was organised in Sabah that I had a
visitation to the Throne Room of God.

I was actually praying for the Convention meeting that night and was
spending time worshipping and getting deeper into God. Going to the
Throne room or any other visitation was the least of my expectations. As I
was deep in worship, suddenly my spirit was caught up into the Throne
room. I saw the glory of God upon His throne brighter than a million suns,
yet it did not hurt my eyes. It seemed like the Throne was only a
manifestation of infinity because I could not see what was behind the
Throne of God. It was like clouds of highest glory shielding the mysteries
and secrets of eternity behind the Throne. I was expecting that one day God
would allow me a glimpse of heaven but it was most unexpected to be
brought straight to the Throne room. Somehow, my attention was taken to
Jesus who was standing next to a seat to the right of the Throne. My spirit
was drawn to Him and instantly I knew that He wanted me to experience
what it was like to sit there. The moment I sat on it, a mighty blaze of glory
filled me both inside and outside. Suddenly, it seemed as if knowledge and
wisdom about everything in the Universe was available to me. It seemed as
if time stood still or did not exist at all. All of the past, all of the present and

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 26


all of the future were just parts of a small reality under the creative power of
the Almighty God. It seemed as if all one had to do was to think it and
something would come to pass. When I came out of that experience, the
Scriptures that we are seated with Christ in the heavenly places came into
my mind (Ephesians 2:6). I was given to understand that one day the perfect
church, the bride of Christ, would walk in the fullness of this authority and
glory (Ephesians 2:7; 3:9, 10).

That night when I ministered at the Convention, it seemed like a mighty


whirlwind came into the convention hall. Hundreds were slain under the
power of the Holy Spirit by themselves as the wind of God blew through the
place. I was informed that many had supernatural encounters and the impact
of that meeting continues to last in the lives of those who were there.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 27


Chapter 5
Changes in the Ministry
The 1990s were filled with many interesting visions, some of which I do
not have full understanding yet. Within the local church, the all night Friday
prayer meetings were attracting people as far away as Singapore and
Thailand. The presence of God would grow very strong towards the
morning hours of the all night Friday prayers. Hundreds of lives have been
changed in the prayer meetings. Angels were visibly present and one
morning when I was driving my car home from the prayer meeting, my wife
saw an angel come into the room and told her that the prayer meeting was
just over. Moments later, my car drove into the car porch. As most of the
prayers were prayers in the Spirit and in tongues, only God knows what the
full spiritual scope of the things that we prayed for covered on earth and in
eternity.

We organised twenty-four hour praise and worship during the public


holidays. I remember clearly the first 24 hour worship that we organised. It
began on Saturday morning following the Friday all night prayer and lasted
till the Sunday morning. We had several teams of musicians and worship
leaders to take different shifts. On Sunday morning, our full regular choir
did the normal Sunday worship. On that particular Sunday, the atmosphere
was filled with the presence and the glory of God. From the very first song
till the last song, it was like we were at the Throne room of God where the
angels were crying,” Holy, Holy, Holy is the Lord.” As I stepped up to the
pulpit, a thick presence of God came into the sanctuary. From the right side
of the building, it was like a mighty wind blew into the place. The people in
the congregation started falling all over the place under the power of God. I
heard a noise behind me, and when I turned around to look, almost all the
choir members were under the power of God. I lost all ability to speak as the
presence of God consumed me. I was barely able to stand. The whole
service was just the presence of God. No one needed to utter a single word.
Before long, I too, succumbed to the power of God and was slain by the
Spirit. When I came to, there were cries, prayers and worship arising
simultaneously from all sides of the church. It was a long, long time before
the natural order came back to the church and everyone left one by one
greatly touched by the presence of God. Many miracles took place that day
and the person doing the video taping suddenly couldn’t see properly with
his glasses. He went to the optician the next day and found that he was
healed completely and did not need glasses any more.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 28


Vision of the White Building

In the church when I was doing a series on the Second Coming of Christ, I
received a vision while preparing to teach, in which I was taken into the
Spirit. I was looking down on the earth and saw a huge white building. As I
was looking at it, I heard a voice on my right saying, “New Zealand one
dollar is to Malaysian three dollars.” I had no idea what this meant and took
it that somehow the white building, whether natural or spiritual, would be
built when the exchange rate was such. Also since, New Zealand was
mentioned; I always thought that it would be in New Zealand that this
would take place.

By 1993, we were also running a Vision Bible College in Malaysia and in


New Zealand. There were many who had felt the call of God to fulltime
ministry and were seeking to be trained and prepared for the ministry. With
the local church ministry, with the travelling ministry and many other
ministries, we were running at full steam right up to 1995. Within the local
church we had bought land and were planning to build a 5000 seat
auditorium that could be expanded four ways to seat 10,000 and then
20,000. The book and tape ministry was expanding rapidly and besides
selling thousands of books and tapes a month, such that it needed fulltime
staff to take care of this ministry, the books were translated worldwide into
many different languages. I could have easily moved on from the church
and started a fulltime ministry preaching Christ from the stadiums and
convention halls of countries around the world. I had more invitations than I
could accept. However, I continued to focus on the local church ministry
seeking to build it bigger and bigger. I also had a vision to take care of all
the needs of the fivefold who were based in our church so that they could
concentrate fully on their ministries. All the plans were noble with good
intentions but the wind of God was slowly blowing in another direction. In
the midst of all the “busy-ness of ministry” I was not hearkening to the call
of God to move on into the next phase which He was preparing for me in
1996. I had no idea then that there was still so much within me that God had
to purify. Every branch that bears fruit, He prunes that it may bear more
fruit (John 15:2).

When I look back from 2007 at the vision of the white building (which at
this point has not fully come to pass yet), I begin to understand that it was
speaking about more than being involved in an outreach work in a foreign
country. Part of its message was that my ministry was to be based in another
country. It was in August 1997, after I had left Malaysia permanently and
settled in Australia, that the angel of the Lord who used to appear in my
ministry from time to time came and spoke to me. I was told that I was
where I was supposed to be and that although it looked like circumstances

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 29


had brought me there, it was God who was in control. At that time in the
natural, the Asian currency crisis was taking place and at some point the
New Zealand dollar came close to the exchange rate of one dollar to three
Malaysian dollars. Something in my spirit tells me that this is not going to
be the first time. There will be yet another occasion, whether it be a crisis or
a gradual decline of Asian currency, as the white building is completed that
this would occur again. At this point in time (March 2007), one should also
not be presumptuous and assume that the building is going to be in New
Zealand. It might even be a symbolic vision (as opposed to a literal vision –
although my spirit sensed that it would be both literal and spiritual) but the
key is to let it come to pass by itself and avoid trying to self-fulfil the
prophecy.

Vision of Self

One of the strangest visions that I had was in early 1995. In deep prayer at
home, I suddenly found myself at the Throne room. I was standing in one
section and looking towards the Throne. There at the Throne was another
image of me kneeling at the Throne in worship. I immediately knew that
that it was me from another future time period. The future me turned around
and look at me and smiled. It seemed that there were some things that he
knew that I, the present me in 1995, did not. It was not until 2005, when I
had gone through what I experienced in the decade of pruning, that in prayer
I again suddenly found myself at the Throne room. But this time in 2005, I
was the person kneeling at the Throne and looking back at the other me
from 1995. So much had changed, within and without. As I look back from
2007 with the insight of the Spiritual World given to me, I knew that God
was teaching me His omnipotence through time and space. No matter what
wrong choices we make, no matter how many mistakes we make, no matter
how much we think He is not in control, He knew us before the foundation
of the world and knows how to bring us back to Him as long as our heart
continues to choose to love Him. For God works out all things for good to
those who love Him and are called according to His purpose (Romans 8:28).
When I was going through the most difficult times in my life over the
decade of 1996 to 2006, this vision kept coming back to me from time to
time like a constant reminder that I would be back worshipping before His
Throne.

I should have been more sensitive to the winds of change that God wanted
to bring into my life. From 1995 to 1996, I was drifting away from God’s
perfect Will in my life. It did not happen overnight but it was a gradual
process. Please understand that I am not willing to share the details of it as it
does not edify anyone and I do not want to justify what happened nor hurt
others who are involved who might think that my perspective does not put

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 30


them in a better light. I do not want to play good guy versus bad guy (or the
reverse) to satisfy the gossip columns or the appetites of those who cherish
reminders of carnal things or who enjoy washing dirty linen in public. I am
here just to tell the story of how I made it back to God with the help and
encouragement of those who wanted to see me make it back to God.

God’s perfect Will involves primarily our heart condition and not our
outward circumstances. The outward circumstances will always take care of
themselves; it is the inward condition of the heart that determines our ability
to handle all manner of circumstances successfully. Abraham was called to
get out of his country; from his family and from his father’s house to a land
that God would show him (Genesis 12:1). This call was given twice: once
before he was in Haran (Acts 7:1-7) and another time after he was in Haran
(Genesis 11:31 – Genesis 12:1). Like Abraham, God was calling me out of
the country but I was not hearing it. Sometimes we all could be like the
widow whom Elijah met, God said that He had commanded her to provide
for Elijah but she apparently did not hear God nor was she preparing to
obey; for when Elijah found her, she was preparing to die (1 Kings 17:9,
12). Through my own lack of sensitivity to hearing God, and nobody else’s
fault but mine, I was not hearing this call even though the open door and
opportunity was standing right there before me. What the heart does not see,
the eyes cannot see; especially when it comes to spiritual things.

The Supernatural Sound

By late 1996, things were chaotic and I was completely out of God’s
perfect Will. It seems that everything was falling apart; family, friends,
church, etc. Although there were many tears shed and much crying before
the Lord, it was all to no avail unless I was prepared to move into God’s
perfect Will in my heart and in my circumstances. Conflicting counsel was
given to me, to my wife and all those around me. There was much anger
expressed by everyone and the desire to punish, to humiliate and to destroy
was clearly expressed by some. There were those who tried to do what was
right but their voices were not heard by those with the greatest power to
make the decisions. No one seemed to be thinking clearly. Worse still, no
one seemed to care. No one was truly praying for God’s solution. As if my
not hearing God was not enough; now nobody seemed to be hearing from
God as to what to do. Everyone was reacting. It was like a thermonuclear
chain reaction that was unstoppable.

It was on one of those nights in the midst of all the reactions, that a
supernatural occurrence took place in our home. At that time my son, who
was still very young, used to sleep occasionally with my wife and I in our
master bedroom. In the master bedroom was a huge paper box which used

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 31


to contain the TV that was in our living room. We kept that paper box
because my son would like to play house in it climbing in and out of the
box. Some time in the middle of the night or in the early hours of the
morning (I didn’t know as it was dark and I did not check the time), I was
awakened by my wife and son talking. I got up and asked them what it was
that kept them awake. They told me that they had heard a loud sound that
awakened them from their sleep and that the noise was coming from the
box. I went over to the box and checked to see whether it was a mouse
which had made the noise. Then I went to the window and bathroom door to
check whether the noise could be caused by the wind or coming from
outside the window. I found nothing that could have caused the noise and
we all went back to sleep.

Moments later, I too was awakened by a loud bang. It was like lightning
had struck the room and produced a thunderclap. And it came from the box.
My wife and son were also awakened by the loud sound the second time. I
went over again to check the box. It was empty. And nothing in the room or
outside the room or house could have caused the loud bang, which only the
three of us seemed to have heard. Puzzled by this, we all prayed and went to
sleep. The next day, our whole family took a pre-arranged trip to Penang for
our vacation that we had arranged months before. My wife and I puzzled
over the supernatural sound that we heard coming from the box. Our main
impression was that God wanted us to pack all our things and move out of
the country. When we came to that agreement, we told that to our children
and made preparations to leave the country the moment we got home from
Penang.

Thus we packed our bags and left the country, not knowing what the
future would hold. Knowing only that if we kept God in our hearts and
lives, everything else would work out fine. Now looking back, I realized
that it was an angel of God that had caused the supernatural sound. Since
our hearts and minds were too weighed down with grief by all that was
happening to hear His voice in our hearts, God in His mercy had
communicated to us in very supernatural manner; that we were to pack our
things in a box and leave the country.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 32


Chapter 6
Extracts from my diary: late 80s to early 90s
18th June 1987

Made this day a day of purification. Prayed that God through His power
would so transform my innermost being to His very purity and image. That I
might have purity of soul.

31st July 1987

Got up at 4:20 am. Managed to spend some time in prayer. Giving myself
to God. Prayed for a sovereign move of God. Desired greatly after God’s
perfect Will.

26th August 1987

Pondering over my life, I realized that the sermons I preached flowed on


what occupied my mind and heart most at that season of time. Since all
good sermons will be full of Jesus, I must occupy my heart and mind with
His person and presence, and then it will flow into my sermons. I noticed
that I could chart my own spiritual growth by the sermons I had preached
through the years. They were different from year to year according to my
growth. Therefore I must worship and be in His presence at all times.

27th August 1987

There are two areas of developing fellowship with God: in quiet times
alone with Him and in learning His abiding presence in our daily activities.

18th September 1987 (Quantum Time Event)

I spent the morning prayer in church. I worshipped and wept in His


presence. Today being my Quantum time earthly thirtieth birthday, I sought
and asked for a present from God my Father, a present from God the Son
and a present from God the Holy Spirit. I prayed with faith and believed I
received. After that I asked for the world, that the world may know God and
I be a completely yielded instrument of God to the world. After that I
danced all around the church. I also experienced like a physical birth, like I
was just born on this date, which in May 2017, I was shown that I was
actually born into this date on earth and taken back in time to 1957 to gain
an extra thirty years of earthly training. Moses had 80 years of training for
the Exodus and I needed to be trained 90 years for the End Time Exodus,

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 33


and this Quantum Time phenomena was created to provide sufficient time
for both the development of spirit (in heaven) and for the soul (on earth). On
this date, while my natural soul was taken back to 1957 to mature through
the years, a part of me, my spiritual self, was taken up into heaven for
heavenly training, and the merging which will begin in May 2017, will be
completed on 18 September 2017.

25th October 1988

I woke up early this morning and went downstairs on the mattress to pray.
As I prayed, I kept calling on God as my Papa. I knew that He is the God
who created the Universe and He is great in glory and might but I also know
that He is my Father through Jesus – my Papa.
Then came a longing for Him so great that I cried and cried for Him. After
some time, a great light shone from His throne and came upon me. I basked
in His glory and light. Then came an overwhelming powerful tongue that
broke forth from my being. I was like an observer, detached and separated
from my being, yet I could stop everything if I wanted to. My will and
control was still intact. But I did not want to stop. I yielded utterly and a
language of tongues poured out from me to the Father. I felt exactly like the
disciples did on the day of Pentecost. I was shaking, filled and overcome
with His great holiness, wisdom, glory, anointing, love and power. It went
through all of my being. I heard the Holy Spirit pray through my lips,
“Father, exalt Jesus through this vessel” several times. Then I fell under the
power of God.

6th May 1995

It is the small incremental victories that we have won that are really
important to the big picture. Every small success, every small victory goes a
long way. When failures come, they also come through small incremental
steps. Pursue every victory no matter how small relentlessly.

16th May 1995

The greatest achievement in life is not the pursuit of accomplishments no


matter how great or how big in the eyes of man. The greatest achievement is
to walk daily in God’s abiding presence day by day – not just once in a
while but a moment by moment consciousness of His presence daily.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 34


The Quantum Time Ten Years of
the Blood
1996 to 2006

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 35


Chapter 7
A New Beginning
Through the encouragement of one of our intercessors, Thomas Latimer,
who was then living in Australia, we moved to Australia in early 1997. One
of the first things I did was to contact the pastor of the local church and
asked that I come under his authority for a probationary period. We found
such a pastor in Pastor Keith Ainge. To my understanding, the National
Board of the Assemblies of God was consulted by Pastor Keith and they
agreed to two years probation. Every week without fail, I would meet up
with him or his associate, Pastor Colin Freeman. At the end of the first year,
Pastor Keith asked me if I wanted to preach and minister, as he wanted to
open opportunities for me to do so under his supervision. I told him that I
would rather not minister until I had fully completed the two year
probationary period. During the second year, Pastor Keith moved to
Melbourne to take on new responsibilities and Pastor Sean Stanton took
over as Senior Pastor. I continued meeting on a weekly basis with either
Pastor Sean or Pastor Colin.

At the end of the two years probation, I asked for ministerial credentials in
order to minister again. Pastor Sean and Pastor Colin supported my
application with the Assemblies of God and Pastor Keith Ainge, who was at
that time on the National Board, also supported my application. However,
the State Board or Council did not support my application. Apparently you
need all three: local, state and national to get the proper ministerial
credentials. By late 1999, I had become acquainted with Pastor Brian
Medway who encouraged me to help start a local church in one of the small
motels. The church started in the year 2000 and in late 2005, it was handed
over to a local pastor as by then I understood that I was in the ten year
period of the blood and needed to seek God to discover how to flow into the
next ten year phase from 2006 to 2016.

The Words from the Angel

About six months after I landed in Australia, the angel of the Lord who
frequently appeared in my ministry appeared to me in the early hours of the
morning. This was an encouragement to me because for many months, all I
felt was that I wanted to die. Deep inside me, I was wounded by how I was
treated by those whom I had greatly helped. During the peak of my ministry,
I had helped some of these in their most difficult times, the least I would
expect from them would be that they do not seek to harm me or my family.
Yet the most vicious comments flowed from those who were once close to
me in the ministry. And those who did not want to see me hurt remained

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 36


silent for fear of also being ostracized. The army of God (rather the
organized church) is the only army that shoots its own soldiers who have
fallen and discards those who they think are of no more use. All of those in
the ministry with me in Tabernacle of Glory had seen how I handled others
who had fallen in our midst and in associated churches, with great
compassion and tenderness seeking to help and restore. Yet when it came to
me needing their help, there was no tenderness, there was no compassion,
and there was no gratitude for what good I had done for them.

By the time the angel of God appeared to me, I really needed the
encouragement. I was told that my life was made up of ten year phases and
that I was not obedient to move out of the country in 1995 to begin my next
phase in 1996. He also told me that God has work for me in the last days in
preparing the church for His coming. I was shown glimpses of the last days
before Christ came. It was like the end time church knew that Christ was
about to return (in the vision it was like we had just one last week before
Jesus came), and people were gathering in teams and travelling all over the
world to preach the gospel like in Matthew 10 and Luke 9 and 10. Some
were even transported in the Spirit like Philip (Acts 8:39). There were
supernatural creative miracles taking place. The glory of God was visible as
the gospel was preached. I wept and prayed. I repented and re-consecrated
my life to God. And then I wept and prayed again. By the time I looked up
from the floor where I had poured my heart out to God, it was already
daylight.

Vision of Twenty-Four Hour Praise and Worship

One of the first things that God showed me in the decade of blood was
that the church would come into twenty-four hour praise and worship. I saw,
in a vision, pillars of light coming forth from all the state capitals of
Australia and also from the national capital. I was told that these pillars of
light were the praises of God’s people. The pillars of light then curved and
formed the shape of a crown. Then suddenly a blaze of light came forth and
filled the whole land with the glory of God. I was then given to understand
that this would be the same for every country of the world. In the Old
Testament, we know that the zenith of Israel’s greatness was in the time of
David with Solomon receiving the overflow. The spiritual strength behind
all these was the 24 hour worship team instituted by David (1 Chronicles
25).

Worship has always been in the heart of God. Jesus said that the Father
seeks those who worship Him in spirit and in truth (John 4:23, 24). This is
worship from deep within our heart and spirit and not just an outward form.
It has taken me these ten years of the blood to develop the art of meditation

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 37


and contemplation. Besides helping where I could in a practical manner in
the local church and fellowship, I had spent the time translating the Bible
and re-examining everything in my theology, methodology and personal
heart and life. The Lord also kept dealing with the depths of my heart and
finding things in me that He could purge away.

Ten Lessons learned in the Decade of Blood

Life is not over until God says it is over.


Between late 1996 to August 1997 when the angel of the Lord appeared, it
was a period that was filled with much fasting, prayers with tears, and
seeking of the Lord. It felt like the deepest valley and the lowest rock
bottom. There was a degree of giving up on Christianity: the so-called
ministers of God and the so-called Christians who apparently do not have
the love of Christ. At no point did I ever think of giving up on Jesus. I had
faith that God still loved me. I had faith that Jesus still loved me. And deep
within my heart, I still found an unwavering love for Jesus. I just did not
understand the gap between the unconditional love of Jesus and the
conditional love of churchianity. When our loads of ministry materials
arrived, we gave most of them away as I never thought that we would ever
want to be in the ministry again. I could just live my life as a private seeker
and lover after God, faithful to my family and a small group of friends. I
could not conceive that I would want to face such cruel rejection again from
those whom we loved and sacrificed much: we had poured all of our time
and all of our finances on building the local church keeping back almost
nothing to ourselves. But God had other plans. To God it was not a
demotion but rather a promotion because He could now deal even deeper
into all my flaws and weaknesses and purify me.

Spiritually I was gaining although physically I seemed to have lost


everything. When the angel of God appeared to me and told me that God
had foreseen all these things and anticipated every mistake of mine, I was
dumbfounded. God is so much greater than any sin or failures or mistakes in
our lives that we all enter into by free choice. He told me that the love for
God that I had in my heart has given God the permission to work out all
things for good (Romans 8:28). To those of you reading this, if you are in a
situation of hopelessness or despair, no matter what sin or failure you have
fallen into, no matter how much you want to end your life, the key back to
God begins not on the outside but on your inside. You must get back to
loving God with all your heart, mind, soul and strength. It might take time
for circumstances to change but until and unless your heart changes, nothing
else will change. As long as there is a God, there is always a light at the end
of the tunnel. And the only way out of that tunnel is the light of love in your
heart.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 38


Guard the heart and mind and let only pure love flow.
It would have been the easiest thing in the world to harbour bitterness,
anger, hurt and seek revenge for all that was done. But in doing so, one
would only become a smaller person in the eyes of God. During these ten
years, the Lord kept showing me the cross. Our Lord Jesus took every form
of abuse, every form of cruelty, every form of rejection and yet the only
emotion and response from Him was love. Even as he bore the heavy
wooden cross on His flayed and exposed skin, His only concern was love
for the people He came to redeem (Luke 23:26-31). While taunted and
reviled at the cross, He prayed for forgiveness (Luke 23:34). While bearing
the pain and all the weight of the world upon His shoulders, He cared for the
provision of His mother (John 19:25-27). He was love, and when pierced,
whipped and crucified, only love flowed out. Moreover, He was without sin
(Hebrews 4:15) while none of us are without imperfections of heart, mind or
soul, or without sin or mistakes in our lives. How much more should we
choose to allow only love to fill out hearts? Love can only grow and
increase when it experiences difficulties to continue doing so. When we
have overcome evil with good and love, we have allowed the law of love to
finish its work in us. The only way to rise above our circumstances that
seem to overwhelm and drown us, is to allow the love of God shed abroad
in our hearts to lift us up (Romans 5:3-5). Only through understanding and
receiving this love from Christ can we truly be overcomers (Romans 8:37).

Our destiny in life through all circumstances is to be like Christ.


Our highest call is not to be apostles, prophets, evangelists, pastors or
teachers. Nor is it to be a successful businessman or a professional in our
area of expertise. These are all just jobs and missions for us to fulfil in this
life but through it all we must be transformed into the character of Christ;
that is God’s ultimate destiny for every one of us (Romans 8:29). The good
news is that we don’t have to be famous, or have lots of money or have big
organizations in order to become like Christ. It is the mere daily choice to
allow the love for God and for others to be the supreme guiding principle in
our lives. The only thing that we take from this earth into eternity is our
character of who we have become. God is love and if we want to live with
God eternally, we, too must become love personified (1 John 4:7-16).

Who we are in life comes from God and not from men or organisations.
Before we came into this world, we were given abilities and talents that
would most suit our vocations. This was even determined before the
foundation of the world and are written in books of the works that God has
prepared for us (Ephesians 1:4; 2:10; Revelation 20:12). Humans and
organisations might strive to take everything that you have away from you
but they cannot rob you of your innate abilities and talents. With the God-
given innate abilities and talents hidden in your spirit, you can always rise

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 39


again to replace everything that has been taken away from you. For the gifts
and calling of God are without repentance (Romans 11:29). This means that
if the anointing for ministry or for business or for a professional skill is
given by God to you, you will always have it for life; and as long as you get
your heart back into the right place, the opportunity will always come again
from God to function in your anointing. For promotion does not come from
the east or the west but it comes from God who is the judge (Psalm 75:6).
Your gift will make room for you and bring you before great men (Proverbs
18:16).

Know who your real family and friends are.


Most people relate to another person either because of what the other
person has or who the other person is. Fame, fortune and position brings
with it fake friends and fake families. Why do people really want to know
you or be your friend or be regarded as a close family member? Is it because
they really love you or like you? Or is it because they have something to
gain from you or benefit by association with you? Rare are those who truly
love for love’s sake. I discovered that even Christians and Christian
ministers sadly fall into this group of fake relationships. They shun you and
stay clear of your path, some pretend to have never known you. Like the
Pharisee or the Levite, they cross on the other side of the road leaving you
to bleed and die. Thankfully, God always sends the good Samaritan who
sometimes does not even know you personally and has no benefit from
association or friendship with you. They just act out of pure love and
compassion (Luke 10:30-36). I now treasure the family and friends I have,
who have stood with me through thick and thin. May each reap a great
benefit both in this life and in eternity for all the spiritual good that I will
continue to do in the decade of glory and other future decades.

Enjoy the quiet life and prepare for the next phase.
There are things that one can’t do when one becomes famous or is in high
demand in a big organisation. The most obvious is lots of “free” time and
quietness away from the hustle and bustle of activity. I have also come to
understand that this is essential in between phases. The Lord programmed
this need for rest and relaxation into us when He instituted the seven day
week with a Sabbath, the rest period for cultivation of land, the seven feasts
of Israel and the fiftieth Jubilee ( Hebrews 4:1-4; Leviticus 23 & 25). Even
Jesus called on His disciples to come aside and rest (Mark 6:31). I have
learned to treasure and enjoy the times of relaxation. We used to take one or
two weeks break in the past but it is nothing compared to months of
relaxation time to do nothing (and having no organisational responsibilities)
but wait upon the Lord and read the Bible.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 40


Explore new dreams and undeveloped interests.
During this ten year period of waiting on the Lord, I had to work to
support my family while doing small bits of ministry at the local level. As I
had never had much experience in the business world, it was wonderful
being able to explore what the anointing for this area was like. As in
everything, there was a learning curve and on 7th May 2005, in the evening
as I was writing on my computer, an anointing in the business realm came
upon me very strongly. Ideas and strategies poured into my spirit and I was
sometimes so overwhelmed that I was just awestruck in the presence of
God. By the time I finished typing some of the things the Lord was showing
me, I looked out of the window and noticed that it was dawn. I remembered
that it was Mother’s day in church that Sunday and the anointing was still so
strong that I told my wife to go ahead to church first without me (I used to
go early to get the place ready) and to pick me up later. In church that
Sunday, I was so drunk in the Spirit that I could hardly stand and when I
finished preaching the message, I had to be driven home straightaway. I did
not stay for the usual fellowship as I was still very much in the Spirit and
wanted to get back into worship and prayer. The Lord revealed how in the
last days this anointing in the business world, like Joseph’s anointing in
Egypt (Genesis 41), would line up with the prophecies of Isaiah 60 in its
application to the church (as also with Israel).

Overcome internal personal issues and weaknesses.


For ten years, I had a heart to heart talk with God. I was honest with Him
about all my weaknesses and inclinations and prayed through each of them
one by one. The Lord through dreams and visions over ten years showed me
many scenes of my childhood and upbringing that were relevant to how the
weaknesses and inclinations came about. Interestingly, my wife had a dream
where a group of spirits dressed in white had put me in an operation room in
which they took something out of my head. Those were thought patterns and
sub-conscious viewpoints developed over years of various childhood
experiences. By the time, I reached the end of 2005, I felt internally
cleansed and that a great number of things had been uprooted out from my
life. I felt like what Jesus said to the disciples in John 15:3, that I was
cleansed by the living and the spoken word of Christ.

Visualize and prepare for the next opportunity.


From time to time, there were dreams and visions that I received about
what was to come in the future. I wrote them down and spent time praying
over and visualising them. It is very important that one let go of the past and
look to the future (Philippians 3:13, 14). For many people, their mental and
spiritual lives have come to a standstill, even though natural time continues
to progress. Many such people are just waiting for death. As long as there is
life in our physical bodies, every day is a day to live to the fullest for the

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 41


Lord. Like a child looking forward to a new future, like a student looking
forward to graduation, I was looking forward to what lay ahead everyday of
these ten years of waiting. The desire to do more for the Lord grew stronger.
The desire to reach and change the world for God grew greater. And I was
doing everything the Lord showed me to prepare for the coming decade.

Be willing to let everything go when God says so.


This was one of the things that caused me to enter the permissive Will of
God in the decade of the Spirit. There were so many things that were
growing and I was at the leading edge of some of the organisation of these
things. It was not easy to let go of success. Every one of us has to deal with
our Isaacs (Genesis 21 & 22). Our ministries and our successes were a gift
from God and it is not easy to let it all go when the time comes. I was to
discover that after every fruiting there must come a pruning (John 15:2).
This is essential to our continued spiritual progress and the increase both of
the quality and the quantity of the fruit we bear in our lives and ministries.
No one escapes the necessary pruning after every fruiting. The cycles must
be repeated in order for the fruit tree to bear the best fruit. Being more
obedient to these cycles, I had prepared to let go of everything that was built
up over the ten years of blood, and when the year 2006 arrived, step afresh
into fulltime ministry by faith.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 42


Chapter 8
Preparation for the Decade of Glory
I sensed an increased tempo as the year 2006 approached. Especially with
some of the visitations of the Lord in 2005, like the anointing for the
business realm on 7th and 8th May 2005. Looking back, I realized that in
each decade there was a particular anointing. 1976-1986 was the anointing
for the Word, 1986-1996 was the anointing of the Spirit and 1996-2006 was
the anointing for the business realm. These three combined anointings were
necessary to function in the decade of glory (2006-2016) where all the doors
of grace and favour would be thrown open. As I look forward in this decade,
my hopes and prayers are that there would be an anointing for glory to usher
in the glory of the Lord.

Visitation to the Spiritual World

Although I was not expecting anything spectacular in 2006 as I began my


usual annual fast in February, I was taken into the Spirit World throughout
my forty day fast and some weeks after my fast ended. It seems that every
night my spirit man was taken and I saw things that eyes have not seen nor
ear heard of the things in the Spirit World (Isaiah 64:4; 1 Corinthians 2:9; 2
Corinthians 12:4). I have put some of the things I saw and experienced in
my book on The Spiritual World. I was astounded at some of the things in
the Spiritual World. I had to re-think through some of my theological
assumptions by re-reading the Bible and examining the Scriptural
perspectives in these areas. I was informed that two waves of the Spirit had
already flowed both in the church and in the world with different effects.
We are in the second wave and soon a third wave will come. Many of the
angels I met also said that my ministry will experience a change as now
teams of angels are assigned to minister together with me; especially as I
bring forth some of the things that the Lord has shown me in the Spiritual
World.

Ever since this visitation, the manifestations of the Spiritual World have
become a daily part of my life. Sometimes for weeks in a row, there will be
constant spiritual communions and then there will be gaps of quietness. I
have continued to be astounded by the many things that were revealed of the
Spiritual World. There were so many things that I have put some of the
revelations that God permits to be shared separately in the book ‘The
Spiritual World.’ It seems as if God had prepared my whole life just for
these spiritual encounters; each of which I carefully checked with the
Scriptures to maintain a biblical perspective to all revelations. The

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 43


revelations given were not just for my benefit but they were given to prepare
those who are born on the earth for the glories of the Spiritual World.

Sharing of Visions at Home Fellowships

During the year 2006, we took in James Soo as a fulltime Bible school
student and also started an Online Bible school. James’ wife, Joanne took
fulltime studies in one of the Australian Universities but joined us whenever
she could in some of the Bible studies. We had an enjoyable time sharing
the Word of God and it was remarkable that James was chosen of God to be
with us during the year of the Lord’s visitation. We also opened our home to
small groups of close Christian friends who were interested in what we had
to share regarding the Spiritual World. I was quite reluctant to share some of
the things God showed me but James shared during one of the Home
Fellowship sessions that he had a dream of Sadhu Sundar Singh delivering a
package to me. I knew then that it was permitted to share some of the
revelations of the Spiritual World. Chris and Mei with their daughter came
from Perth and joined us for one of those sessions together with Dr Soo and
his wife from Melbourne, and other local Christians. The small group
sessions were good because they provided for me the testing ground for
sharing some of the remarkable revelations of the Spiritual World from a
biblical perspective. It has taken nearly two years to slowly absorb and
understand some of the things that God was showing regarding the Spiritual
World. During this time, I searched through the Scriptures to see what the
Bible said about some of these revelations. As always with the things of
God, one finds that it is already there in the Bible but yet not perceived by
men. We are many times blinded by our own assumptions of the Spiritual
World and our unquestioned traditional beliefs. We always need the opening
of our understanding by the Holy Spirit to understand the Scriptures (Luke
24:45).

Visions of Revival in the Fourth Phase of Ministry

As I write this portion of autobiography (April 2008 at present time of


writing this section), it is written looking forward to glimpses of things that
will result within and from the fourth phase of ministry. Obviously, at this
time I cannot write it as a historical account but only as a glimpse into the
future as shown to me by God. When some of these things have taken place,
we will write other books looking into the historical occurrences which God
orchestrates. There are many and varied visions and glimpses of the future
that God has shown and permission is granted only to share some of these.
Others will be shared when the fullness of time comes.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 44


The visions that have occurred are of three different groupings: those that
are of a specific nature which are like images of actual specific events
taking place in the future, those that are of a symbolic spiritual nature (for
example, a vision of a gushing river from heaven flowing over parts of the
earth), and those that are conditional promises which show the possibilities
dependent on the success of influencing human choices in the right
direction. The other factor in the visions is that the concept of earthly time
does not exist in the Spiritual World; therefore when the Lord Jesus, angels
and spirits speak to me of future events, the application of our earthly
measurement of time to that of prophesied events is a subjective rather than
an objective application. Nevertheless, in regard to these visions, there is no
question as to whether they will occur but rather when they will occur.

Visions of Two Healing Waves of Revival

There will be a first wave of healing revival of such power that we will
see all the healing signs and wonders that Jesus performed in His earthly
ministry: the blind see, the dumb speak, the deaf hear, the paralysed raised
and a few raised from the dead (Luke 4:18-19; 7:21-23). Signs and wonders
are not an end in themselves; they are signs which point to the message of
God’s Word. They are the Holy Spirit bearing witness to the message of the
Word of God (John 5:36; Luke 24:49; Acts 1:8; Hebrews 2:4; 1 John 5:6-8).
The word that was used to refer to these signs and wonders that will take
place in the first wave of healing was the word ‘notable miracles’ (Acts
4:16). I was informed that these notable miracles have already been
predestined by God and those whom God has desire to perform these
mighty works in their lives have already been chosen and ordained (John
9:3; Ephesians 2:10). Their testimonies of the greatness of God’s love
towards them and His mighty works of miracles upon them will cause the
faith of others to increase such that it would be a ‘common’ thing to see the
blind see, the dumb speak, the deaf hear, the lame walk and the paralysed
raised.

As a result of the faith level increase of the first wave of healing, God will
do more and more special miracles many of which have not been seen
before (Acts 5:15-16; 19:11). The Word of God will grow and prevail (Acts
19:20). At the peak of the first wave of healing miracles, God will release a
second wave of signs and wonders. The second wave of miracles will
include creative healings. People whose limbs have been amputated will
receive new limbs and those who have had their physical organs removed or
become dysfunctional through sicknesses will receive new organs and
tissues. There are a series of rooms in the Spiritual World where the limbs,
organs and tissues are being prepared which will be released to the earth as
gifts to the recipients during the creative miracle waves. I was informed that

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 45


only a few believers have touched the fringe of this creative healing wave
and that God desires to show His abundant love, grace and mercy to His
people but the unbelief of people are preventing Him from working mightily
(Mark 6:6). This attitude of unbelief will be broken through the first wave of
healing miracles and then the second wave of creative signs and wonders
will be demonstrated by the Holy Spirit.

Visions of a Harvest of Souls and Churches

At the beginning of the church in Acts, after the prayer of 120 disciples in
the upper room, there was a harvest of 3,000 souls to the Lord (Acts 2:41).
After the notable miracle at the Gate, the number of souls increased to 5,000
(Acts 4:4). After the re-structuring of the church with new ministries added,
the church multiplied (Acts 6:7). If they had multiplied by 2 (double) it
would have doubled to 10,000 and if they had multiplied by 4 (quadrupled),
they would have been 20,000 strong. Mega churches were normal and
common phenomena in the book of Acts. In visions of this coming wave of
revival, I saw churches that grew to be 100,000s in attendance and even
millions of souls. Churches of more than a million members were not
unusual during this great revival. The fivefold ministry was fully restored
and travelled (some supernaturally) in teams throughout the earth sharing
the gospel of Christ.

In one particular vision, as one of the churches with over a million


members were worshipping, there was a great supernatural earthquake and
the entire city and its surroundings came under conviction by the power of
the Holy Spirit (Acts 16:25-26). If you have never seen millions of people
fall under the power and conviction of the Spirit, you will see it in this
coming wave of revival. The entire city and its surroundings were brought
to a halt under the power and conviction of the Holy Spirit. Like in the
Welsh revival, righteousness came to entire cities and communities and the
praises of God were present everywhere. People of all professions and
talents were tapping on their skills supernaturally and doing things beyond
the knowledge and advancement of the natural and secular world. In a
vision glimpse of one such meeting of architects and engineers who were
anointed by the Holy Spirit, they were discussing and planning an
auditorium seating one million people.

A Great Wave of Love

Although the number of believers increased exponentially during the great


healing signs and wonders revival, there was also a deep unity and love
amongst them. Many who were wealthy used their abundance to help the
poor, needy and sick. There were many orphanages and super hospitals

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 46


which catered for all of the spirit, soul and bodily needs of patients using
both the latest medical inventions, natural healings and prayer for the sick.
In many instances, as they were feeding the poor and hungry, God
multiplied their resources supernaturally. Some may wonder why God needs
to use hospitals when there is a great wave of healing revival. From the
Spiritual World perspective, healing using natural means and healing using
spiritual means are not opposed at all. Both are from God and they are for
the restoration of the human body but operate within their boundaries
(natural law within the natural law of substances and spiritual law by the
operation of spiritual principles). God was also releasing, in the supernatural
wave of healing, a natural healing wave: new insights and understanding
into natural substances and these new discoveries and knowledge were
being applied for the benefit of humans by believers skilled, talented and
anointed in those areas.

During the waves of this revival, people valued spiritual things more than
natural things and many of them shared all that they had with one another in
the love of Christ (Acts 4:34). There was a great spiritual unity that went
beyond all natural and social barriers (John 17:20-24). There were
manifestations of God’s glory and it was like a cloud had covered all the
people as they gathered together in worship and fellowship. Many visions
and visitations were given to the people, especially to the children and the
youth, as they were taken by angels and ministering spirits into the heavenly
realm. Sometimes the glory of the Lord would remain for days upon such
and there was a supernatural light that constantly surrounded them for some
time after their spiritual experiences.

Harvest of Souls from Non-religious Backgrounds

One of the things the Lord showed me was the three waves of spiritual
hunger and revival which affect the world and the church differently. The
first wave began in the mid-twentieth century. In the church it resulted in
the various expansions of Pentecostal, Charismatic and renewal movements
that impacted on Christendom. In the world, there was a growing spiritual
hunger which unfortunately led some into the occult and new age
movement. Towards the end of the twentieth century (about a forty year
cycle in each wave), there was a second wave that came forth from the Sprit
realm. In Christendom, instead of hungering for more of God and pressing
deeper into Him, many did not yield correctly to this second wave and
instead hungered for outward and worldly success. On the other hand, those
in the world who felt the hunger of God began to have an interest in Jesus
and God, with many finding the truth in Jesus. The Holy Spirit also began to
reveal Jesus to all those outside traditional Christianity; especially the truths
of loving God and Jesus and loving one another.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 47


There is a third wave coming which will bring those within the church
who stayed true to the Word of God and kept their spirituality, in spite of
the worldliness of the church, and those who already have a measured
revelation of Christ outside Christendom into the full measure of the stature
of Christ. The two healing waves are part of this third wave of spiritual
hunger and desire in God. There will be many, many people who have not
attended traditional church before, and who have no religious affiliation,
who will be part of this pure, undefiled Bride of Christ. These will be joined
to those who have been labouring within the ecclesiastical church and who
continue to grow in their love for God and the Lord Jesus Christ. So great
was this harvest of souls that church buildings could not contain them.

Fivefold Ministers going forth in Teams

During this great revival, many fivefold ministers travelled together in


teams and went all over the world preaching and teaching the Word of God.
It was just like Luke chapter 9 and 10, and Matthew 10 where Jesus was
sending out His disciples two by two; only this time the disciples were the
fivefold ministers travelling to all the four corners of the earth perfecting the
church through the power of the Holy Spirit. Some of these teams were
carried by the Spirit like Philip and taken from one place to another in an
instant (Acts 8:39). Most of the teams consisted of two or three people and I
did not see anyone alone by themselves. Remarkable signs and wonders
were done through the power of the Holy Spirit. Many angels were working
alongside the fivefold ministers and some were permitted by God the Father
to manifest themselves in various ways.

The above are some of the visions which God has shown in regard to the
work of God in these coming decades. For the moment, we conclude this
section of the book with a quote from Ephesians 4:11-13:

And God gave some to be apostles, some prophets, some evangelists, and
some pastors and teachers, for the equipping of the saints for the work of
the ministry, for the edifying of the body of Christ till we all come to the
unity of the faith, and of the knowledge of the Son of God, to a perfect man,
to the measure of the stature of the fullness of Christ.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 48


The Quantum Time Ten Years of
the Glory
2006 to 2016

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 49


Chapter 9
Challenges in Returning to Ministry
So much has happened since 2006, when I entered into the decade of
glory. Unexpected it had begun during the normal forty day fast of the year
with visions and revelations of heaven which were partly recorded in The
Spiritual World book. My last record in Chapter 8 was during the year 2008
and I had relocated to Sydney to facilitate international travel (as Canberra,
my Australian home town, did not have an international airport) and I had
started to travel regularly to Singapore on a monthly basis. In re-launching
the ministry, there were a several challenges that were faced and when
looked at in hindsight, were like tests which had to be overcome.

Challenges and Tests

Giving up the work that was started in Canberra (Cathedral of Grace)


which was doing very well when I left it to a local pastor, we settled in
Sydney by end of December 2008. An outreach work in Sydney was started
as a base when I also commenced travelling regularly to Singapore to
conduct teaching seminars. Sometime after I started coming to Singapore,
Ps James Soo had a crisis in his church which would have resulted in him no
longer being a pastor of a local church with a regular income. Although I
had no intentions to start a church in Singapore yet, as I was happy to be
ministering across denominations as I did in the 1990s, and I also have the
responsibilities of the new outreach in Sydney that was just starting up. The
seminars were doing well in Singapore but feeling some responsibility to
provide for Ps James, who at that time had committed himself to work for
my ministry, I started a local church in Singapore and made him my main
associate pastor there. This provided him with a regular income but the
whole outreach in Singapore changed to establishing the local church there
rather than just a seminar seeking to reach out to all denominations and
churches. It was several years ahead of what I had originally planned to do
as the normal modus operandi would be to re-establish oneself as an
effective itinerant preacher reaching to hundreds and thousands first before
planting any church, if one wants to seek fast church growth. In the end it
was quite a reasonable set up, with two small local churches to pastor in two
countries, one in Singapore and one in Sydney.

While the mini-crisis was occurring in Singapore pertaining to Ps James


losing his original church and being re-employed in a local church that I had
started, a storm of rumours started circulating in Sydney against me, coming
from a local pastor there who had originally asked me to help take over his
church, which I had consented to. Everything was going well and the board

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 50


of the church was preparing to have me take over their church when the
pastor had another offer to join with his father in law (also a pastor) and he
changed his mind about asking me to take over the church. Instead of being
honest and telling me of the changes, he stirred up unrelated controversies
and rumours by suddenly raising up my past. This finally split his board and
church, and for a few months I had meetings in one of the former board
member’s house. A community hall was rented for the Sydney meetings and
one day a Dr Kwan came and prophesied to me and invited me to use his
cark park space behind his clinic to start a church in Parramatta. He has seen
a vision of a meeting of over 100,000 people in Sydney and believed that I
was to be part of the fulfilment of that prophecy. He told me that training
and making disciples was his portfolio but church planting was mine. After
looking over the proposed venue, I accepted the challenge to plant a church
in Parramatta instead.

During the years 2008 to 2010, I settled into a routine of travelling twice a
month between Sydney and Singapore. Even in the natural it was a
challenge but I did not foresee the test that was coming within my own
home and family. By then my children had grown up and were independent.
It was obvious that I would soon be confronted with the same challenges
and tests of being surrounded by people of both sexes and by fame. I
suddenly found myself in a situation where I was constantly being
chaperoned. When I questioned those doing it both my wife and the sister
involved point to each other as the source of the instructions to do so; no
one accepting the responsibility for such actions based on insecurities. In the
end this controversy caused a tension in our marriage almost ending it by
December 2009 and leading to another crisis in 2010 (there was no physical
relationship, only an emotional one). Different leaders and people took
different sides in Sydney but none dealt with the hurts and healings of the
past which were the root source of family tensions and expressed in nine
pages of negative writing. In the midst of the Sydney crisis, an associate
pastor sought to take over the whole church and boot me out. And he was
supposedly the counsellor to my wife but he had actually sought to divide us
further by using whatever information he had to completely remove me
from ministry permanently and forever. This time, unlike the past where I
would usually give way and start anew, I stood my ground and said that it
was he who should leave.

When the Sydney crisis ended, Sebastian Ng and Michael Tan who had
more understanding of the root source of the crisis, helped managed the
crisis and took on more responsibilities. Meanwhile, the former associate
pastor who had failed to take over the Sydney church kept on petitioning
Singapore church leaders to remove me also from Singapore church. He
succeeded six months later to shake all the leaders by various

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 51


correspondences. The Singapore leaders reacted emotionally and did not
even give Sebastian Ng, who flew in from Sydney for a special meeting, a
proper hearing. Moreover, by that time Sydney had moved way past the
crisis and was running with stability. The church in Singapore split several
ways and many of the leaders left and the church had to be re-started again.
Ps James stayed behind a few months to hand over responsibilities smoothly
before he left. The church in both Sydney and Singapore were stabilized and
running smoothly by the end of 2010.

Lessons Learned

Gamaliel has said wisely in the Bible that if a work is of God no man can
stop it and those who oppose it need to watch less they be opposing God
Himself (Acts 5:34-39). Looking at crisis past and recently, and with an eye
to the future knowing that there can be many varied types of crisis and
challenges, the most important factors below are often forgotten and
ignored. There are Bible principles to handling crisis and controversies:
chief amongst them are Matthew 18 and that the whole matter be handled in
love and all are given a fair hearing. Additionally, actions and decisions
made must be prayed over first and checked with the Word of God as to
whether the course of action taken is biblical. And above all, emotions must
be held in check. There were a lot of emotions running high during the
Gentile controversy in Acts 15. There were those who definitely were
wrong (the Judaizers), and those who were right (Paul and Barnabas), and
those who were emotionally loyal to Judaism and traditions. The Bible
stated that there was much dispute yet they resolved the crisis with love,
with the Word of God and with a balanced decision that was acceptable to
the Jews and the Gentiles (Acts 15:7). The only group that was not happy
was the group called the Judaizers (pro-circumcision group) who later
becoming the enemies of the apostle Paul. Paul called them dogs in his
writings (Philippians 3:2).

The following were useful lessons learned from various crises:


 Reactive decisions are bad decisions. Sometimes it looks
right in the high tension of emotions but over time, the
decisions made can be seen in history and hindsight as wrong
decisions and bad judgments. Never react, rather pray, study,
meditate, consult then act.
 The lack of prayer and seeking God’s judgment results in
human judgments being made. God judges differently from
humans for only He truly knows what is going on in a human
heart that causes actions and consequences.
 Negative emotions are a hindrance when seeking proper
counsel and consultation. These impede justice and fairness

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 52


especially when anger, jealousy, pride and various other
negative emotions hold the day in court.
 Motivation and not arguments or reasoning alone must be
also considered for true judgment. Many Christians appeal
their stand in the guise of justice, righteousness, correctness
and fairness but their motivation could be self-promotion,
revenge, anger, etc. It would have been clear if people ask
not just what a person does or want others to do but also the
motivation of the person who propagates an action. Of
course, if a person’s motives are questionable, they would lie
and not reveal why they do what they do but given sufficient
time in prayer in the presence of God, all motives would
soon be revealed.
 Destruction versus edification. In church matters and in
ministry, and in personal correction of life and ways, the
question that must always be asked is how do I help the
person, the ministry, the church and not just how to punish,
how to remove or how to extinguish.

Many of the proponents of justice, righteousness and purity in modern


Christianity would not have given a second thought to the utter
condemnation of Saul before he became Paul, to King David for his adultery
and murder, to Abraham for his lies that endanger a nation, to Moses for his
murder of the Egyptian, etc. Thank God that in the end there is a Christian
judgment to whom we all will give account to Christ for our lives (2
Corinthians 5:10). And for the rest of the world an eternal judgment in
which all will give account for their lives (Revelation 20:11-15). For the
Lord does not see as man sees, for man looks at the outward appearance but
God looks at the heart (1 Samuel 16:7).

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 53


Chapter 10
The Beginning of the Glory
In December 2010, we were having a Christmas dinner fellowship at the
home of Joshua and Grace who introduced us to Ps David who at that time
was running a church in Cambodia. I had been told that he had a permanent
ability to see spirits (demons as well as angels, but more of angels after he
gave his life to the Lord). Over dinner, I discerned that it was related to the
lightning strike that he experienced as a child and told him so, and also told
him that he had a prophetic ministry. A friendship was struck and we
supported his ministry in Cambodia from that time. After about a year, he
joined us in our church camp in December 2011 and afterward became a
regular minister in the local church in Singapore. One of the angels that
followed him was Uriel, and he made an appearance to him just before he
came to our church on 18 September 2011. At first he was just to be a
missionary from our church that we could support regularly and in line with
what he thought was a calling to the Middle East, he was going to make a
trip to the old site of the seven churches in the book of Revelations. COG
Singapore supported him throughout the trip.

The Trip to Seven Churches in Spirit

It was during the trip to the seven churches that things took on a different
turn. The trip to the seven churches was from 29 January 2012 at Ephesus
and Smyrna to Pergamos on 9 February 2012, which coincided with the
fortieth day of our forty-day fast; and continued to Thyatira, Sardis,
Philadelphia and Laodicea by 21 February 2012. One of the strange
occurrences that Ps David saw was how my spirit was also with him
together throughout the whole trip. At Ephesus when he first saw my spirit
present with him, he was told that I had been obedient and was given
revelation of all these things that are happening. I was literally with him
throughout the whole journey in spirit form. It was at Pergamos that
Archangel Uriel revealed his real name. From the trip to the seven churches
besides prophecies, many beautiful revelations were given, including
Noah’s Ark, Old Testament and New Testament Panorama.

From that time to midway in 2013, Ps David and I had a beautiful


relationship where God used his open vision to show him things and I was
the interpreter of all the visions and revelations. During the trip to Russia in
May 2012, and while on the flight between Vladivostok to Moscow, the
Transaero Airlines plane started to shake in an air pocket and many people
on the plane cried out in fear. At that time, Archangel Uriel appeared on the
aisle next to Ps David and said to him, “Pray for him.” Ps David asked,

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 54


“Who? You mean the pilot?” Uriel replied, “Not this pilot, pray for him!”
and showed Ps David a vision of me praying in my room (it was around
2.00 pm Singapore time on 14 May 2012). “Pray for this pilot, he has the
experience and a steadfast faith to do this work of revival. Do you know that
you have been a great encouragement to him? The Lord has brought both of
you together for this work. He is the pilot, you are the navigator! Together
both of you will bring about this revival and glorify Christ our Lord! So
pray always for him, even as he also prays for you.”

From the time of the seven churches trip to the delivery of the Seven
Thunders prophecy on 14 November 2012, I had to sift through all the
various downloads and revelations, added some of my own downloads, and
slowly taught the revelations that were in line with the written Word of God.
It was during one of those teachings where I was covering the book of
Revelations that it triggered the Seven Thunders revelation when I
mentioned that it would have to do with the total defeat of Satan on planet
earth. One Sunday, I heard an angel spoke to the worship leader, whose
name was Linus, and called him ‘Melchizedek’ and on that Sunday, I
officially gave him the name. Immediately after that Uriel instructed us to
get ready for the Seven Thunders revelation. That was when 14 November
2012 was chosen as the day for it to be delivered in the presence of all the
highest angels once again in our modern era. The last time this was given
was to John the Apostle on the island of Patmos and he was told not to
write it down (Revelation 10:1-7).

Beginning of Errors and Inaccuracies

Shortly after Ps David joined us from 18 September 2011, and before he


became a prophet during the seven churches trip, he was given a dream
which he wrote to me in an email on 10 October 2011 as follows (bold
highlight and underlined is done by me):

Sent: Monday, 10 October 2011 1:05 PM


To: Ps Peter
Subject: Dream. A returned book of prophecies

Hi Ps Peter.

Been having lots of dreams again, writing them down faithfully. But last
night had a special dream.
Please give me your interpretation.

A hand placed a thick book, title "Prophecies" and a voice said, "Read and
Speak"

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 55


Funny thing when I opened the book, the left page has no error but the right
page has errors. The error is like someone didn't scan properly and the
page has words missing or pictures not complete. And it is all the same as I
turned the pages, left page ok, right page not complete.

The book contains lots of pictures and numbers also.


I have this struggle. Having received Shammah and this knowledge that the
Lord has placed me on a high level of prophetic ministry, I am hesitant.
Already I feel the weight of responsibility.

My feel is that the church camp would be the launching time for me into this
ministry. This is why I am reading up the old dairies and asking the Lord to
return to me those dreams that I had deleted away.

More and more the Lord is revealing the work of mission in Middle East to
me and I am praying about them. These prophecies would be instrumental
in this mission work.

Please share with me.


Love
David

The essence of this sharing is that much of the visions, revelations,


downloads and spiritual encounters needed a strong biblical hand to sift
through and properly interpret them. Sometimes I had questioned certain
downloads as the reception and interpretation seemed to be mixed together
and after that it was received more clearly. As can be seen from the dream
of Ps David, from beginning to end, all his visions and interpretations would
need help. He could only see the left side but never the right side properly.
One of the strange things that came about, when mistakes were beginning to
manifest to the whole prayer group, was in the first trip to Seoul in May
2013 when we got lost for hours and took some time to find our way down
(despite the presence of angels – as angels are not allowed to intervene in
our normal way of doing things); Ps David could not see from his right side.
It was some time after the trip to Ayers Rock in March 2013, that I realized
that he was beginning to withhold revelations and started to interpret them
himself. It was also after that when the fallen angel who buffeted Paul in 2
Corinthians 12:7 made an appearance at the pulpit of our church in my
absence (Ps David was in charge of that particular Friday all night prayer).
It was also during the first trip to Seoul that the same fallen angel was also
observed speaking to the ruling spirit over Korea.

I suggested going back to Seoul again as I sensed that some things were
not completed as we had failed to build an altar for the Lord in Bukhansan.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 56


From 9 to 13 September 2013, we managed to go back to Seoul a second
time. Everything went well as far as the whole prayer group was concern
but upon the return from this particular trip, Ps David claimed more
revelations of some sort of new direction which culminated in him declaring
publicly that I was suspended without any consultation nor proper church or
biblical procedures. In all the prophecies claimed to have been received and
also written down, nothing was mentioned on suspension. Prophecies can be
misinterpreted and are to be subjected to other prophets or man of God
verifying the prophecy and its content (1 Corinthians 14:29). On that
Sunday, 22 September 2013, I called on the whole church to fast for three
days from September 23 to 25. It was during the fast that the Lord began to
reveal the extent of the errors and the infiltration of the fallen angel. At the
conclusion of the three-day fast, we held an open forum and made a stand
against the errors and the wrong direction taken. During the forum, I left the
door open to Ps David to acknowledge the errors and then participate in the
completion of the various phases of assignments given by the angels.

Moving on with the End Time Mandate

The Lord’s downloads continued to flow and I was taken to see another
dimension from heaven’s perspective (what we called the Third Cube) and
we have continued in the prayer walks and mandates that had been received.
It was after the second Seoul trip on 18 September 2013, the Lord told me to
build altars in every state in Australia and then continue on to finish phase
three and four to position the End Time move and revival. One of the things
the Lord also revealed was that when there is an abundance of revelations,
there will always be a testing to ensure that one is not puffed up. This was
described by the apostle Paul who spoke in the third person of going to the
third heaven, caught up into Paradise and heard inexpressible words which
is not lawful for man to utter (2 Corinthians 12:4). And then Paul mentioned
that lest he be exalted above measure by the abundance of revelations, a
thorn in the flesh was given to him, a fallen angel from Satan to buffet him,
lest he be exalted above measure (2 Corinthians 12:7).

One great lesson to learn from this experience is that no matter how
spectacular the manifestation, how supernatural the encounters, and how
awesome the revelations, everything is for the exaltation of Christ and never
for the exaltation of the human vessel by which it came through. Humility
will always be the spiritual legal licence to drive the move of God, with love
being the fuel, faith the engine and the whole vehicle giving glory to the
Lord. The road travelled must only be the perfect Will of God our Father
being done and not the will of men. Whether in Christianity or in the world,
God still resists pride and exalts humility (1 Peter 5:5-6; James 4:6-8). In
both instances of the apostles Peter and James exhorting for humility, the

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 57


warning is that Satan prowls like a roaring lion seeking whom he may
devour and the only way to resist the devil is to first humble ourselves and
submit to God first (1 Peter 5:8; James 4:7).

The Second Call and Appointment

From September 2013 to December 2013, we continued to sift out all the
revelations received thus far and continued to move on into new things
which the Lord had revealed. On the all night prayer meeting between 13
and 14 December 2013, the Angel of Australia made an appearance after the
teaching session that night and it was revealed to me that he was actually the
Seven Thunders Archangel in the book of Revelations (Revelation 10:1-3).
It was revealed in March 2013 Ayers Rock that the Angel over Australia at
Ayers Rock was mentioned once in the Bible. We were not told where in the
Bible and I had left the matter at that without seeking to pursue it. Suddenly
on Friday 20 December 2013, it was revealed to me that he was the Seven
Thunders Archangel!

Once I had received that revelation, the first thing he told me was that I
am now called John as I now also stand in the place of the apostle John to
receive the Seven Thunders revelation. I was stunned. Never in my entire
life or ministry had I conceive that I had to take on a new name as I was
happy with my name as it stood at that time. Throughout the rest of the
night, I prayed and not wanting a common name John added to my already
common name Peter, I sought permission to use the name John but in other
language derivation with the same meaning. By the next day, Saturday, I
had settled on the name Johann. On that Sunday, 22 December 2013,
Melchizedek the Cherub came and also said that I had to take on the name
Melchizedek. I was stunned. Two names in one go. How was I to take on
two names? After the ministry on Sunday, I returned home and prayed over
the whole matter and finally settled on Johann Melchizedek Peter, which I
sensed pleased the Lord, too. I was also told that after I had my name legally
changed that I was to go to Pergamos at the end of the forty-day fast and
have it sealed by the Lord. There were several other assignments given to
me, including one in which I had to re-write my entire meditation file with
the new name and complete it before 9 February 2014. Together with three
witnesses, I journeyed to Pergamos to be there by that day and received a
second call, now standing in three anointings, that of John the apostle, Peter
the apostle and Melchizedek the Cherub. It was a powerful sealing and upon
my return to Singapore on Thursday 14 February and Sydney on 16
February, I blessed the congregation including those online that had
supported the ministry in various ways over the many years with the
threefold anointing.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 58


Chapter 11
Working with the Angels
In August 1997, about six months after I arrived in Australia, an angel
appeared to speak about a future ministry of which I will be involved with.
Prior to his appearance, I had a dream vision in which I saw the end times. It
was like one week before Jesus’ second coming and I was leading the
people and sending them in teams all over the world. Some took
conventional methods of travelling while others were transported in the
Spirit. In 1997, that would have been the last thing I thought about as
ministry was not on my mind and I was not even sure that I would get back
into ministry. The Lord saw differently and at the lowest point in my life,
sent a vision and an angel to sow the seed of the future into my life. I now
understand that the dream vision was about the last seven years before
Jesus’ return. As I moved into the decade of glory (2006 – 2016), the
working of the angels had increased and several things were imparted and
sealed. The appearance of the angel over Australia, the seven thunders
archangel, asking me to change my name was one of the main things with
many other significant impartations.

Physical Transportation in the Spirit

On 18 September 2011, the archangel Uriel came to Cathedral of Glory,


Singapore and blessed me. Since that time, every September, significant
things have taken place. In working with the archangels and angels
throughout the years 2011 to 2013, there were numerous significant
impartations. One of the highlights of working with the angels was on 27
November 2012, as we were travelling from Sydney to Canberra to scout
out a good place to build an altar to the Lord for December 2012 when the
members of COG from Singapore and Sydney will participate in Australia
altar building and prayer walk as part of phase two (Phase 1 was the seven
churches; phase 2 was prayer walk and altar building in Singapore,
Malaysia, Australia, New Zealand, Korea and China; phase 3 was prayer
walk and altar building in Canada, USA, Brazil, Argentina, London, Greece,
South Africa). On that particular day around about 12pm, we were
transported physically nearly 100 kilometres from a point north-east, just
before the first turnoff to Goulburn to a point just before the Barton
Highway, north-west of Canberra.

We were so taken by the moment of transportation, after we realized that


we had been transported, that we did not check the exact time but realized at
around 12:30pm that it was impossible to have travelled that far in such a

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 59


short time. The map below shows the rough areas where we were taken
from point A to point B:

We did feel an enormous surge of energy that lasted for several days after
that event. The angels explained to us that what they did was to take a frame
from Point B and joined it to Point A as we travelled. Physical reality was
made out of frames of energy, time and mass (Hebrews 11:3). They also
said that was how Adam, before the fall, could travel anywhere he wanted to
on the planet or in the Universe. All he had to do was to see the frame and
enter into it. He lost this ability after the fall. Our Lord Jesus was able to do
so but mainly did it in the absence of His disciples. In the endtimes, the
glorious church will be taught how to travel in this manner through the
empowerment of the Holy Spirit and the angels of God. Close to Point B,
we met another archangel (Australia was assigned two archangels) who was
especially assigned to prepare Australia and the people of God for this
endtime move.

Translation at the End of Ministry Completion

On 1 March 2013, the Lord revealed to me that I would be translated and


not see death. I had been praying that I would be translated like Enoch since
8 November 1979 (a part of my daily personal Scripture meditation file).
Exactly thirty-three years and about three months after the constant

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 60


Scripture meditation, God revealed that my prayer request had been granted.
I had also repeated this prayer request at the end of Phase 1, when we were
at Mukawir on the evening of 8 Aug to the morning of 9 August 2012,
where I received the following prophecy:

And thus says the Lord


My son I have collected all your tears in My bowl. Once the tears were
bitter but now He has turned sweet. And you shall drink from this bowl and
it will be sweet to you; and what measure of great joy you will receive.
Listen, My son, listen. What was lost will return in greater measure. You
have sowed in tears but now you shall reap in joy. Tonight My faithful ones,
My holy ones, and all the holy beings shall witness; and it is recorded 'you
are Peter, I have called and raised you and upon your shoulder I shall build
My church and the gates of hell shall not prevail against you.' And tonight
My faithful one, Enoch the Scribe, shall hand to you the keys of the kingdom
of heaven and whatever you bind on earth will be bound in heaven; and
whatever you loose on earth will be loosed in heaven. And His holy one
Raphael is here and he said, Peter, what you seek from me that I will give to
you. Tell me (tell him now), what do you seek from him....he hears it and
blesses you...but he says, "What else do you seek and I shall give you."

On that night, I asked for four things: to be translated at the end of my


ministry completion, open vision, power over all sicknesses and diseases,
and power to handle all the wealth of the earth. When I was told to ask, like
Solomon in 1 Kings 3:9-10, I wanted to ask for the things that would help
me to do God’s Will on earth and especially His assignment for my life, so I
asked for these four things knowing that these would help me perform
God’s Will for the sake of His glorious church. That evening after receiving
the prophecy on 8 August 2012, I went up the hill where an altar was built,
and as we waited, I was taken into the twelve gates with Enoch for what
seemed like an eternity but physically was a few hours. I was filled with
great joy and my physical soul and body were just laughing and laughing
while my spirit was taken into the heavens with Enoch. I returned from
Mukawir accompanied by new angels assigned to help me complete this
endtime call.

On 14 November 2012, on the night of the release of the Seven Thunders


prophecy, I received this prophecy:

You have heard the Word of God spoken. You are willing to pay the price
but the price is great...it is so great...but the Lord said My Will, will be
done. You are willing to pay the price. This is My anointing, says the Lord,
My power will come with this anointing. When you take of it, you shall be
filled with His power and you shall do My work faithfully. From this day,

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 61


My eyes will watch even more closely over you. Much more will be taken
from you because much will be given to you. The Lord says build My
church, prepare My bride. I seek a holy perfect bride and you shall
accomplish this. Now receive. And My Spirit shall come upon you and you
shall increase in My word, and you shall have boldness to go forth even to
the ends of the world, to teach and build My church. This is a hard thing. I
see it is a hard thing. But see I have given you the power, the Spirit to do
this. Now stand up. See that the Lord is standing with you. The Lord is
indeed with you. The Lord blesses you.

Ever since then, my heartbeat, my life and my whole concentration of


spirit, soul and body is to only do God’s perfect Will whatever the price,
whatever the cost, whatever is required, in order to bring about the glorious
church and the perfect bride for our Lord Jesus Christ at His coming.

Visitations and Impartations of the Holy Spirit and Various Angels

In March 2013 at Ayers Rock, we were there to meet with the Lord and
His angels and built three altars to the Lord. On 27 March 2013 in the early
morning at about 2:20am and 4:20am, I was visited by the Archangel over
Australia and then by the Archangel from the Guardian section of the
Universe who was one of three archangels from the Universe assigned over
the planet earth. The impartations given were so strong that I spent three
days fasting to absorb it. On 12 April 2013, I was again visited by three
archangels, the Archangel over Australia, the Archangel located near
Canberra in charge of Australia’s endtime destiny, and the angel of
Pergamos. They each imparted something and spoke to me some
instructions. I was told by the Archangel over Australia that the judgment
and shaking of the earth in 2029 would be caused by him and not by the
devil. It is part of God’s cleansing of the earth. The Archangel in charge of
Australia’s endtime destiny told me to go to Canada and anoint the altar
with the same anointing oil that I had used. The angel of Pergamos told me
to ensure that the church is prepared to enter into the period of the glory of
God which will begin to manifest when we complete phase 3. Once again
the impartations were so strong that it took three days of fasting to absorb.

On 18 September 2013, having completed the second altar building trip to


Seoul, I went up to the altar that I had built for God in Sydney and prayed
and continue to dedicate my life to God. I was given several revelations that
have to be kept secret for the time being but was also told to go to all the
state capitals of Australia and build altars to the Lord to seal the destiny of
Australia for the endtimes. We started in Sydney, then went to Adelaide,
Melbourne, Hobart, Brisbane, Perth and Darwin. Before going forth to

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 62


Melbourne, and while I was still in Singapore, the angel over Tasmania paid
me a visit and told me where to go for prayer walk in Hobart.

Upon completion of the altar building in Hobart and returning to Sydney,


he appeared again on 19 February 2014 and this time carried some sort of
white shining beings in his arms. He said these were gifts from God to me. I
did not know what the beings were until over the next few days when I saw
them again, I saw that in the spirit, they had grown to full majestic looking
shiny and glorious white horses. I was told that they represent anointings
and they would follow me in my ministry and I was given the privilege of
naming them. When I asked the Holy Spirit what to name them, I was given
the wisdom to call them Glorious Dominion, Victorious Peace, Abundant
Prosperity and Resurrection Life. These represent direct spiritual opposition
against the work of the four horses of the antichrist in the book of
Revelations 6:1-6. These strange symbolic things are taking place in the
Spiritual dimension and only when we go to heaven will we fully
understand all this significance; but we now reap the benefits of the
impartations of the anointings of the Holy Spirit and His angels.

On 11 May 2014, we finally completed the prayer walk over the state
capitals of Australia and headed for Ayers Rock on 12 May 2014. On 13
May 2014, we built another altar to the Lord in Ayers Rock and as I sat next
to the altar to pray, the Lord spoke and said, “Take off your shoes for the
place where you are standing on is holy ground.” I took off my shoes and
socks and sat on a rock beside the altar and placed my bare feet on a rock
next to it and prayed for one hour in the Spirit. There was a tremendous
impartation and revelations and it took several days to digest everything.
One of the things that took place was a portal had been opened in the Spirit
dimension to God the Father. There were also revelations given on the
destiny of mankind in the millennium.

There has also been a change since I took on the new name in my ten year
cycles. It now flows with the seven churches of Revelation chapter two and
three, where we will see the glory of the seven heavens and the fullness of
the seven Spirits of God: this present time to 2020 is the revelation of peace,
love and glory; 2020 to 2030 is the revelation of the power of God; 2030 to
2040 is the revelation of the life of God; 2040 to 2050 is the revelation of
the wisdom of God and 2050 to 2060 is the revelation of the mercy of God,
followed by the last years of the endtimes. We are indeed in the end of times
and everyone who has an ear to hear, need to hear what the Spirit is saying
to the churches. Those who do not will die and not see the glorious church.
It has come to the time for the manifestation of the glorious church, the holy
and perfect bride of Christ. The Spirit and the Bride will soon say, “Come!”
(Revelation 22:17). Amen.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 63


Chapter 12
Midnight Hour for Planet Earth
From May 26th to June 6th 2014, we took a small team to Madaba, Patmos
and the seven churches building altars at each place. At Mt Nebo I was told
to build another altar and when I slipped away from the group at around
2am on 26th May, several in the group saw a physical manifestation of one
of the angels who went with me. They knew I was alone but they saw
another person with me. We concluded the building of all the altars in the
seven churches in Turkey and gathered together in Pergamos as a closing
finale of the altar building trip. On August 9th 2014, we began a second forty
day fast which will culminate on September 18th 2014 on Mt Nebo, Madaba,
Jordan. Forty of church members from Sydney, Singapore and our online
church came together with me for the close of the altar building trips in
Australia at Ayers Rock. Since that trip to Ayers Rock, the Lord started
showing me the end of days and what is to happen after September 18th
2014.

18th September 2014 – the Midnight Hour

One of the things the Lord showed was that the midnight hour has come
upon the planet earth on September 18th 2014, and the Lord will begin to
separate the wheat from the tares (Matthew 13:24-30). The time of the
harvest has come and the reapers will be sent from that date. As it is the
pattern in the Bible, the moment the sickle is put to the grain, seven weeks
will be counted (Deuteronomy 16:9). The Lord reminded me of the vision I
saw in 1997 of the last week before the Rapture (the second coming of Jesus
in the air). Like the prophecy of Jeremiah revealed to Daniel, the last week
that I saw was actually seven weeks of years – 7 times 7 years (Daniel 9:2,
24). It is like the last week of Noah before the great flood when God told
Noah to move into the ark together with the animals (Genesis 7:4). From
September 18th 2014 onwards there will be seven cycles of seven years
marking the end of days for the planet earth (Daniel 12:13). The first cycle
is like the seven years of prosperity in Joseph’s time (2014-2020), the
second cycle is like the cycle of famine in Joseph’s time (2020-2027), and
the third cycle will be a period of wars and turmoil on the earth (2027-2034)
(Genesis 41:25-36). The other cycles that God has shown, will be revealed
when the time is closer.

It is from 18th September 2014, that I enter into the fullness of the calling
of the voice that cries at midnight (Matthew 25:6). On 9th February 2014,
when I was in Pergamos having my new name sealed by God, I was told
that there were two prophecies in the book of Isaiah regarding my calling:

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 64


Keep silence before Me, O coastlands, and let the people renew their
strength! Let them come near then let them speak; let us come near together
for judgment. Who raised up one from the east? Who in righteousness called
him to His feet? Who gave the nations before him, and made him rule over
kings? Who gave them as the dust to his sword, as driven stubble to his
bow? Who pursued them, and passed safely by the way that he had not gone
with his feet? Who has performed and done it, calling the generations from
the beginning? ‘I, the Lord, am the first; and with the last I am He.’ The
coastlands saw it and feared, the ends of the earth were afraid; they drew
near and came. Everyone helped his neighbour, and said to his brother. ‘Be
of good courage!” – Isaiah 41:1-6

Declaring the end from the beginning, and from ancient times things that
are not yet done. Saying, ‘My counsel shall stand, and I will do all My
pleasure.’ Calling a bird of prey from the east, the man who executes My
counsel, from a far country. Indeed I have spoken it; I will also bring it to
pass. I have purposed it, I will also do it. – Isaiah 46:10, 11

I knew these prophecies as a student of biblical prophecy and always


thought that it referred to either Abraham or Cyrus. I was awestruck by the
responsibility of the calling. The Lord also said that as John the Baptist was
the voice that cry in the wilderness to prepare the way of the Lord (the first
Coming of our Lord Jesus Christ – Isaiah 40:3; Matthew 3:3), so I am the
voice of one that cries at midnight that the bridegroom is coming (Matthew
25:6). John the Baptist had the spirit of Elijah to prepare for the first coming
of the Lord and I have the spirit of Enoch upon me to prepare the church for
the Rapture, the coming of the Lord in the air. The real Elijah and the real
Enoch will both come to prepare for the Second Coming of the Lord in
judgment (Revelations 11:3-7). While pondering these things at Pergamos,
the Lord said that if He had predestined Moses to lead the biblical exodus
out of Egypt which involved about three million people, wouldn’t He have
predestined the vessel to lead the end time move that involves the exodus of
about one hundred and fifty million people and the salvation of about three
billion people? He took me into the Spirit and showed me the predestination
even before the foundation of the earth and the amount of preparation
involved in preparing for this end time move. In awe, I trembled at His
revelations and accepted the responsibilities to lead this end time revival to
prepare in Christ a glorious church without spot or blemish (Ephesians
5:27). My only desire now is to see the answer to Jesus prayer for the
church in John chapter seventeen.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 65


The Separation of the Wheat and the Tares

As I write this chapter we are about seven days from September 18th and
on the thirty-fourth day of a forty-two day fast. So many things have
happened and so many changes had taken place that it looks like all things
have been renewed. The Lord also revealed that after September 18th, the
apostate church will rise as the wheat separate from the tares and the tares
gather together into the apostate church (2 Thessalonians 2:3). During the
church age which ends in the Rapture, the antichrist is held back by the
Holy Spirit and the church working together with the angels of God and
only the apostate church is allowed to manifest first before the antichrist
reveals himself as god after the rapture at the beginning of the Great
Tribulation of Daniel (2 Thessalonians 2:3-4, 7; Daniel 7:20; 11:36).
However, the apostate church will rise first then after that the manifestation
of the antichrist (2 Thessalonians 2:3).

The Lord showed me five judgments that will come upon the present
church:
 Repentance for not having first love, otherwise the lampstand will be
taken away (Revelation 2:4-5).
 Repentance for the sin of Balaam (the love of money, the
merchandising of the anointing and the giftings of the Holy Spirit)
and for holding the doctrine of Nicolaitans (the rule of laity not
recognizing the many appointed men and women of God whom God
sent as His voice to them), otherwise He will come with a sword
against them (Revelation 2:14-16).
 Repentance for sexual immorality and spiritual idolatry, otherwise
He will bring the sentence of death upon them (Revelation 2:20-23).
 Repentance for being dead spiritually, otherwise they will not be part
of the Rapture (Revelation 3:2-3).
 Repentance for being lukewarm, otherwise they will be vomited out
by Jesus and cast out of His church (Revelation 3:15-17).

With the birth of the antichrist in 2015, it is no longer enough for


Christians to just be nominal Christians or lukewarm. Darkness will cover
the earth while the glory of God will arise upon His people (Isaiah 60:1-2).
The story of the wise versus foolish virgins is a story of the separation of the
wheat from the tares, for the Lord said to the foolish virgins ‘I do not know
you.’ (Matthew 25:12). The contrast between the wise and the foolish is the
definition provided by the Lord Jesus, that the foolish hears the word but
does not do them and is destroyed (Matthew 7:24-27). The Lord also
showed me during these forty-two day fast that the reason why He held back
the seven thunders revelation until it was released on 14th November 2012
was because the release of the revelation, hidden from the time of John the

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 66


apostle, was because upon its release, permission is granted to Satan to
begin the work to bring about the birth of the antichrist on planet earth
(Revelation 10:4). It was reserved for the end of days when God’s glory had
first come upon Pergamos on 9th February 2012, and as the enemy begin to
organize a flood of evil, God will raise up a standard against him (Isaiah
59:19). Since then the glory of the Lord has risen upon us (Isaiah 60:1).

Passing over into Midnight

The forty day fast that began on 9th August 2014 on the day that we
travelled to Ayers Rock and will end on Mt Nebo, Madaba where we will
have an evening of prayer on September 20th is in three cycles of 14 + 14 +
14 = 42. When we began the fast we did not realize the significance of the
forty two days. Without purposefully planning it, at the end of the first cycle
of fourteen days (August 22nd to 23rd), we had water baptism and three of us
went up to Bukit Timah hill and built an altar to the Lord. The angels in
Singapore moved to that hill as a staging ground and continue to do so until
Singapore has completed its part in the end times. At the end of the second
cycle of fourteen days, we celebrated with communion in church after the
all night prayer meeting (September 5th to 6th). The number fourteen is a
number of the Passover when the Israelites first came out of the land of
Egypt (Exodus 12:8). It is also the remarkable number of three cycles of
fourteen generations from Abraham to Christ (Matthew 1:17). We will have
seventy-seven people in all night prayers on Mount Nebo on September 18th
2014, the night of the crossover into Midnight hour for the planet earth. All
things on planet earth will change from thus forth. The Lord showed three
different groups of mighty angels who have been reserved for the end times
released: a group that executes judgment, a group that joins themselves to
the glorious church and a group that joins themselves to the existing angels
who have been serving on planet earth since the days of Noah, and some
before that.

There are so many other things that have taken place by this crossover
point on 18th September 2014 that we will teach in time to come. For us it is
the end of phase three. Now we understand that phase one was for the glory
of God to come at Pergamos, phase two was for the release of the Seven
Thunders, and phase three was the entrance into the Midnight Hour for the
planet earth; resulting in the final closure of all time in seven cycles of
seven years. The Great Tribulation in itself is in quantum time which ends
the complete annihilation and removal of all evil on earth and in the
Universe. What a glorious moment in human history to live at the crossover
time! While evil is allowed by the permission of God to be gathered
together, in the church it is time for the glory of God to rise upon each and
every member, in exceeding glory (Haggai 2:7-9; 2 Corinthians 3:9).

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 67


Chapter 13
Release of Angels in the Great Harvest
A lot of revelations were released during the trip to Israel, Madaba and
Mukawir from 15th to 23rd September 2014. With the passing of the
midnight hour on September 18th 2014, there are angels released that bear
the sickle to bring in the harvest (Mark 4:29). There are two harvest periods,
one in which the bride of Christ is being separated from the tares and
brought together to form the glorious church. This takes place before the
Rapture and culminates in the Rapture before the last week of Daniel begins
(Matthew 13:36-43). The other is the harvest that takes place after the
preaching of the two witnesses and the 144,000 during the first half of the
Great Tribulation (Revelation 14:6-20). Both are connected in that the
people who respond to God during the Great Tribulation had already seen
the works of the glorious church before the Tribulation but did not receive it
to become part of the Bride. Responding to the gospel of God preached by
the two witnesses and the 144,000 during the first half of the Tribulation
makes them a part of the Tribulation saints which are different from the
glorious church. There is a law of God that specifies that from the beginning
of the time that the sickle is put to the grain, seven weeks are counted
(Deuteronomy 16:9). This represent the seven times seven year cycles that
represent the Great Harvest that is taking place now after September 18th
2014. The first half of the Tribulation is also considered part of this harvest
time and God had moved the last week of Daniel’s 70 week prophecy to
take place immediately after the Rapture so that it is part of the Great
Harvest. With the passing of the hour of midnight, we have now entered the
Great Harvest period in which fresh angels have been released for this
momentous event which will conclude the destiny of this cycle of planet
earth’s existence.

Names of Archangels, Angels and Spirit Beings

I am writing this chapter about 70 days after 18th September 2014 (date of
writing 26th to 27th November) as it has taken time to absorb the revelations
before committing it to writing. All 77 participants have also gone through a
forty day test (from 18 Sept 2014 to Korean altar building trip on 27th to 29th
October 2014). So far three have failed the test and their destinies have
changed. There are certain things that are now allowed to be revealed now
that we have entered into the Great Harvest periods of seven times seven
years. Firstly, I had been modest in telling people that I only stood in three
offices like the apostle Paul (apostle, teacher and evangelist) but from my
meditation files from 1979, I had actually been meditating on all fivefold
offices. The Lord revealed to me that in order to train the ten million

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 68


fivefold ministers to help in the ministry of the 10,000 churches that we will
plant which will disciple the three billion people that have been given to this
ministry, I needed to stand in all fivefold office like Jesus; which is apostle,
prophet, teacher, evangelist and pastor (this is the order in the church as
given in 1 Corinthians 12:28-30 which is different from Ephesians 4:11).
And in order to accomplish this task, there were a group of archangels,
angels and spirit beings assigned to my life and ministry. Some of them
have been active in my life since I was born and others activated at different
times and phases in my life. I share their names so that firstly, my
intercessors can continue to pray for both me and the angels by name to be
strengthened by God our Father and our Lord Jesus Christ, and secondly, for
those three billion who are given to the covering of this ministry to know
that these are the leaders of the billions of angels working for them, too.
These are those that are now activated at this juncture of ministry:

Archguraelyal
Before coming to planet earth he was a detail organizer of planets &
energies in the creation of the universe. He was also the spirit being working
with Joseph in the book of Genesis. When God created the heavens, there
were sections and each section were under the archangels, and each section
was also having spirits beings. Archguraelyal was under Archangel Raphael.
He is the Spirit of wisdom organising the planets, the energies, the universe.
They were doing that in the early part of creation. He is hands on in every
detail of creation. He was one of those three who visited Abraham. Lucifer
was not able to influence any of the spirit beings of wisdom. Lucifer was
only able to influence some of them involved in creation and other things. It
was shortly after I picked up the stone in Bangsar, Malaysia in 1979 and
engraved my name on it that he was joined with me. Because of the
similarity of spiritual frequency, he is joined spiritually with me and in
visions would appear to be a bright being residing in me, although he can
easily come forth and appear as normal angel. For those reading this who
are puzzled, just remember that spiritual dimensions are different from
physical dimensions and they are not limited to the same time, space and
bodily constrains of our human perception. Elijah was also joined with a
spirit being of a different category.

Raphael
He has been my main guardian angel watching over me since birth. He is
one of the holy angels who preside over the spirits of men and their
development in the Universe and on earth. He also presides over all the
afflictions and the sufferings of mankind. He was also the archangel
commissioned to bind the fallen angel Azazyel (Azazyel, a leader of the
fallen angels, had corrupted men before Noah’s flood with false teachings in
misapplications of the secrets of heaven and taught men weapons of

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 69


warfare, fashion, use of stones, etc. and all manner of iniquity). It was
through the help of Archangel Raphael that my spirit man had been able to
grow to the present extent through meditation on the Word of God.

Tccasurael
Tccasurael was a separate grouping. He was assigned about the same time
when Melchizedek took on the high priest work on earth. Tccasurael was
with Christ. He has an end time assignment. There was a different batch of
angels after Adam was created. The archangels were the first batch at
creation with angels under them but Tccasurael was among a different batch
after Adam’s creation. He is in charge of Christ’s priestly work and always
stand on my left side with a scroll, writing the Word of God spoken through
my lips under the unction of the Holy Spirit. He came to join with me after
the first trip to Madaba in August 2012. He was among the scroll angels I
was with before I came to the earth, preparing for the endtime move. It is
good to have him here on earth working in this endtime move. He
coordinates the library of books of human lives that are a part of the
archives kept in heaven and adjusts them according to the additions or
deletions on earth.

Phanuel
He presides over repentance and the hope of those who inherit eternal life.
This involves renewal of the mind, soul and the reception of the holy life of
God. Being in charge of the holy presence of God, he was the archangel that
prevented the fallen angels from entering the presence of God. Together
with Michael, Gabriel and Raphael, he works with the Ancient of Days.
Phanuel was the archangel who had worked with William Branham (before
William Branham went astray with wrong teachings and died in a car
accident in 1965). Phanuel will be assigned permanently to work with me
during the super growth period of Cathedral of Glory (COG) churches from
2022 but will be making appearances now and then until he is permanently
assigned to stand on my right side as I bring this message of the endtimes to
the public domain of the world. From the time of our trip to Israel and
having built the altar there on 16th September 2014, he was activated and
there is now standing on my right side an angel to bear witness to the
message of the voice that cry at midnight until Phanuel comes permanently.

In signs and wonders, we also work with several Spirit Beings, three of
whom work with Jesus in His ministry and help create the works of Jesus.
Working together with these same Spirit Beings, who are present each time
I stand and declare the Word of God, we are able to do the works of Jesus
and the greater works of Jesus. The Spirit Beings work together with all the
various archangels and angels that have been assigned to this ministry.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 70


Angel of COG
In the creation of the Universe he was setting up civilizations. He was like
the architect who was raising new civilizations and worlds. In biblical times,
he was helping David in warfare and government. King David was literally
building a new kingdom from scratch and was helped by the Angel of COG.
The ten thousand angels under him have never been an angel of any church
yet and they have been kept pure for the endtime church. When the two
moons were destroyed (the earth during the time of Lucifer had three moons
but two were destroyed during the judgment of the fallen angels), he was
with many of the main archangels (Michael, Gabriel, etc.) reassigned to the
earth for their roles on planet earth up to this endtime. He has been visiting
churches and observing pastors and will bring this knowledge with him, He
joined with me around the time that Archguraelyal joined with me. He has
never been assigned to any church before but this ministry call involves
three billion people, ten thousand churches, ten million fivefold and an
exodus before the tsunami of one hundred and fifty million people. Thus he
was assigned to me as the Angel of COG.

Melchizedek the Cherub


He was the guardian angel of Adam, the first man created on earth. He was
also the guardian angel with the flaming sword that guarded the Garden of
Eden. When Adam died, he obtained permission from God to help finish the
work of Adam until Abraham was ready. He took on the appearance of
humans and serve as Melchizedek the priest in the Old Testament, king of
Salem, teaching men how to worship God. After he blessed Abraham, he
returned to his role in heaven but has visited people on earth from time to
time. He visited Daniel and his three friends before they were captured and
prepared them for their roles in Babylon. He was also the fourth person
(looking like the son of God) who stood in the fiery furnace with Shadrach,
Meshach and Abednego. He came back to joined with this endtime move to
prepare the church in true worship that will bring us to the throne of God in
the fullness of God’s holy presence. He was the one who asked me to add
the name Melchizedek to my name on December 2013 and has merged with
me on 9th February 2014 when I was sealed for this move of God under my
new name. It is Melchizedek the Cherub who helps the Rapture generation
enter into the last and final worship service preceding the Rapture. He was
the guardian angel assigned to the first man, Adam, and by protocol, he is
the final angel to bring the new man, the body of Christ, completed matured
into heaven (last Adam and second new type of man – 1 Corinthians 15:45-
47; Ephesians 4:13).

Uryaluzzael
When God created the Universe and the earth, and before the earth was
inhabited, He was the care-taker of the earth. When Satan moved in with his

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 71


fallen angels to use earth, He resisted and stationed himself in a certain
place resisting and when the Lord revealed the endtimes, He saw it and
stationed himself here in Australia from long ago. Those worlds that were
corrupted, Satan brought over to earth – something like an invasion of earth.
Before Satan invaded, Uryaluzzael had already been imparting his energy to
earth. There was already started filling the earth with the glory of God.
When Satan invaded, Uryaluzzael contained it and Satan was only allowed
to have one area only (smaller than one third). He has the knowledge from
Adam onwards as he has observed the history of man. He has met up with
Enoch and Enoch has visited him. He did say that he is mentioned once in
the Bible. Enoch and Moses have seen him. When Satan invaded and God
re-assigned the three groups of Universe archangels, there was a conference
and they came up with a plan – the rest of them will carry out the plan and
he will be stationed on earth and he connects the earth to them (like he holds
the earth for them). With the portals that were opened, he is still connected
to the portals of the Universe and there has been no break in communication
since that day he was assigned. He would be like the flag – like a standard
bearer. Those animals that Adam failed to name, they seem to be contained
in him. He is like a container or caretaker of the earth – he actually
represents Mother Nature and Gaia. He was also the Seven Thunders
Archangel of Revelations chapter ten. When I first met him on 27th March
2013, he said that he was mentioned once in the Bible. It took me until
December 2013 to realize that he was the Seven Thunders Archangel that
John the apostle saw and ate of the book he gave (Revelation 10:1-11).
When I was given the knowledge of who he was in the Bible, he spoke to
me and said that I was to add John to my name as I now also carry the
Seven Thunders revelation. After reasoning with God to have the name spelt
in other language (instead of the English version John), I became Johann
Melchizedek Peter. His energy flows through me on every part of the earth
that I stand to proclaim this endtime message as the voice that cry at
midnight.

Raguera’ael
When Satan approached the main archangels during the fall (to
unsuccessfully get them to follow him), Raguera’ael was among the higher
group with them. Raguera’ael came from the group of guardian archangels
of the Universe. His generals all came from there. The archangel who is in
the atmosphere now over Australia is actually a guardian archangel
channelling the guardian archangels’ energy from the universe towards
Raguera’ael. When the worlds were formed, certain angels direct the
energies. The angels under Uriel knew how to direct the energies correctly,
and also maintaining the energies that continue to sustain. In order to direct,
they must have be able to absorb and harness the energies. Raguera’ael does
not look like most warring archangels but he does have great power to direct

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 72


the energies of God. Raguera’ael came to Australia when Smith
Wigglesworth came to Australia. He has remained in Australia to prepare
for this endtime revival especially in the establishment of Australia as the
guardian country in this endtimes for refuge. All the other countries which
have refuge areas have angels assigned under Raguera’ael. He was the
archangel who assisted us to be transported physically (car and all) on 27th
November 2012 to the place where he had stationed himself.

Suriturael
He is a general under Archangel Gabriel. When he was with one of the
leaders of the thirty mighty men, Eliezer, he was downloading military
strategies to him. Eliezer was commanding the mighty men. Knowing what
needs to be done and to get it done. He was assigned the title of general after
the creation of Adam. Before that in the universe under Archangel Gabriel,
he was like a quality surveyor. After everything was done, he would inspect
the work. He was with Mordecai. He was also with Haggai the prophet. It
was a temporary role like a surveyor making sure that all the other prophets
receive the same theme while under Haggai. He was depositing consistency
of the same revelation. He was like a personal angel to Haggai but moving
amongst the rest of the prophets. He was among the angels with Paul. Paul
had many angels with him and was like a New Testament Enoch. He was
not assign as a personal angel to Paul but more tasked with the alignment of
the teams sent by Paul. In modern times, his sphere of influence was in
Africa and was with the evangelists in Africa (amongst them Reinhart
Bonke). He will be working alongside us to ensure consistency of revelation
amongst all those in COG church.

Suramael, Rafebael and Archaraca’al


They are from the thirty archangels from the Universe that visited us in
August 2012. After the August visit from them, three of them stayed behind
and are stationed above the atmosphere of the earth, positioned in such a
manner that they cover the whole planet. Suramael is from the guardian
section, Rafebael is from the boundary section and Archaraca’al is from the
warring section. To understand the events in the Universe, I have classified
the section of the Universe that fell under Satan the warring section, the
pristine section that never fell as the guardian section and the boundaries
between them (not necessarily a straight line) as the boundary section.
During the rebellion, God’s archangels were assigned to these three
sections: the guardian angels to preserve the two third section that did not
fall, the boundary angels that prevent infiltration into the guardian section,
and the warring angels that defeated Satan and his fallen angels in the
section that rebelled. From August 2012 to September 2014, they have been
coordinating with the rest of the Universe to create three portals that are
now permanently opened after the midnight hour. All the energy of God and

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 73


the Universe has now increased in flowing through these portals and
channelled to planet earth through these three archangels. We work with all
these three in holding back the spirit of lawlessness, which increases
through the birth of antichrist, through the Holy Spirit and the archangels
until the Rapture (2 Thessalonians 2:7). Suramael met up with me on 27th
March 2013 when I was in Ayers Rock and has been active since. His
energizing has increased since September 2014 and the energizing of
Rafebael and Archaraca’al will increase from February 2015. All their
energizing will increase exponentially from thus forward.

Michael, Gabriel, Uriel, Rakael and various Spirit beings


We work with many various archangels who are assigned to the planet on a
worldwide basis. The archangel Michael presides over human virtues (love,
mercy, patience, kindness, longsuffering, etc.) and commands the nations.
Michael was the archangel instructed by God to pronounce the judgment
and defeat of the fallen angel, Samyaza, who taught sorcery and was the
leader of the group that came and cohabited with humans. He was the leader
of the warring archangels who defeated Satan in the Universe and Samyaza
on the earth. He is waiting for the time to cast Satan to the earth (Revelation
12:7-9). Gabriel presides over the affected creations of life from the
rebellion (serpents), over paradise with all the various creations and life
forms created by God and over the cherubim. That is why after the
appearance of Melchizedek to Daniel, Hananiah, Mishael and Azariah, it
was Gabriel who at the later stage appeared to Daniel in the final
revelations. He presides over all that is powerful and creative energies of
life forms. Uriel presides over the judgments of God and the fear of God. He
was the main angel involved with the directing of energies in creating the
galaxies and star systems with their planets. He made his appearance in
COG Singapore on 18th September 2011 and was instrumental in the release
of the seven thunders prophecy in COG church and worked closely with us
throughout phase one to phase three to lay the foundations for this endtime
move. He was the archangel who brought the judgment of God to Egypt
during the tenth plague. The twelve gates, the Cube and connections to the
Universe is his domain. Rakael, was in human fables and myth (many times
mistaken and misinterpreted wrongly) known as the king of the east. All the
Asian countries are his domain, including Russia and China which play an
important part in the endtimes. We will be working very closely with him
and all the other archangels Michael, Gabriel, Uriel and many other Spirit
Beings who are too many to write down in details.

Ever since the midnight hour is crossed, many groups of angels from the
three sectors of the Universe (guardian, boundary and warring) have been
coming to the earth plus a group that came from Christ’s domain especially
for the glorious church. We are back to the days of the Bible where angels

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 74


and men work and cooperate together to bring God’s perfect Will to
completion on planet earth and the Universe. This endtime is but a small
part of the plan for the finale that is being ushered in and being prepared
even now as is also the new heaven and the new earth.

The Rapture Generation - Youth Renewed and Restored like Eagles

With so much energy that proceeds from working together and merging
with God the Father, Jesus our Lord, the Holy Spirit, and all the various
angels, the physical body is renewed to the extent that not only sicknesses
and diseases cannot touch the physical body but the body becomes ageless
and youth is renewed like the eagles (Psalm 103:5; Isaiah 40:31). For the
Rapture generation, death is conquered not by dying and resurrection for
Jesus has already paid the price for that; rather death is finally conquered in
the physical body while we are alive and the body is immortalized into a
perfect type of spiritual-physical body (1 Corinthians 15:51-55). My
translation, sometime before the Rapture, is a first fruit of this (perpetually
look like thirties, the ideal age of Jesus at ministry time). Since taking the
role of the voice that cry at midnight, this energizing has begun even now.
In the Old Testament we have a few samples of this when the physical
bodies of Joshua and Caleb were offset by 40 years (the wandering time in
the wilderness) and it was like the process of aging stopped for them and
they were the only two who entered into the land of Canaan from the first
generation looking as young as they were forty years prior (Joshua 14:7-11).
Moses was also affected by the same youth renewal process and at hundred
and twenty years of age had perfect eyesight and a perfect body
(Deuteronomy 34:7).

I have come to understand that this process of youth renewal is the power
of the resurrection power of Christ conquering the process of death, aging
and decay even while we are still alive physically (Romans 8:11). The
whole creation since Adam’s time, when death entered into the world, had
been groaning and waiting for a generation that will never die but will
conquer death while still alive (Romans 8:18-23). The apostle Paul had that
revelation and the hope that began in his time for the body of Christ has
materialized to faith in this endtime generation. Imagine all of us being
young like Jesus in His thirties! It is being like Jesus, the Word becoming
flesh (John 1:14). Since the day of Pentecost and throughout church history
there has been some degree of the Word becoming flesh in various
individuals keeping them from diseases and illness. In the Old Covenant,
God kept nearly three million people free of sicknesses, diseases and decay
(Exodus 15:26; Deuteronomy 8:4). The New Covenant is far greater than
the Old and the conclusion of this New Testament period is the complete
conquest of all sin, sicknesses and diseases and being transformed into the

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 75


fullness of God’s glory in spirit, soul and body (2 Corinthians 3:9-10). The
Word of God will fully become flesh in us (Job 33:25; Proverbs 3:8;
Hebrews 4:10-12). This is the special blessing for the Rapture generation
not because of who we are but because of the abundant release of God’s life
and energy that has never been released before in any other generation. God
has to demonstrate the complete conquest of death through the resurrection
power of Jesus in this last generation as the final victory of Christ manifest
in His people. Jesus came that we might have the life of God abundantly
(John 10:10).

Pre-Earth Revelation of Predestination

We all know that we have existed in God before the foundation of the
world (Ephesians 1:4; Psalm 139:16; Jeremiah 1:5). Our memories of what
occurred before coming to earth were suspended so that it would not hinder
our progress on planet earth. From time to time, by the permission of God
our Father, we are allowed to know certain portions of such memories
especially when we have reached the stage of spiritual development where
such knowledge would not hinder us but help us progress even further in the
knowledge of God. I needed a confirmation of the timing to reveal this
knowledge and when three of those amongst the members of the church
started seeing portions of these knowledge revealed to them independently
(the scroll visions seen by various members of COG church), it was the
signal I needed from God to reveal this knowledge. This knowledge is
revealed in order to help gather all those who have especially been trained in
Christ before coming to the earth to be part of this endtime move.

Before coming to the earth, I was like a scribe, a recorder of God’s Word
especially for the work of the endtimes. I have been under training in a
section of heaven where one of my angels, Tccasurael came from. I was
predestined in Christ to lead this move even before the foundation of the
earth. Many spirits of those coming to the earth were also trained under me
and we have been led of God the Father to be born in different parts of the
earth to different parents over a time span of many decades apart (some
coming earlier than others). After the midnight hour when I had come into
the realization of my call as the forerunner of the Rapture of the church I
was to call them all together to form the glorious church. This is similar to
the 144,000 being chosen to come to earth. They will be born between the
years 2015 to 2029 and will be gathered together before the Rapture by a
Jewish Rabbi who has been predestined for this purpose. After the Rapture,
the Jewish Rabbi with his family will be martyred. Enoch and Elijah who
will lead the 144,000 will be appearing to this Rabbi and instructing him
during the church age. The fact that all the 144,000 of Revelation chapter
seven will be born in our time should be an indicator to all those alive today

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 76


to know that we are indeed in the end of days! Although the members of the
glorious church are born decades apart, they are all part of the groups of
spirits trained to be part of the endtime church. As I enter into my calling for
the endtimes, the predestination knowledge of my role as the scribe or scroll
writer is allowed to be revealed for the gathering of the members of the
glorious church together on planet earth. I had seen part of this in 1997 (the
last week of Jesus coming), in 2006 (the visions of heaven) and recently
from phase 1 onwards of this move (from September 2011 onwards). It is
best that I leave some of the details of the description of the pre-earth
predestination to the members of COG church who had seen these visions,
which are included below:

Vision of Melissa
This is the vision I saw on 28 Mar 2014 during All Night Prayer
I saw you in a white robe and seated at a desk in a white room. You were
scribbling on pieces of scrolls with a white feathered pen with golden tip.
The scribbles were not English, rather they looked like some ancient letters,
Hebrew or Greek. Standing to your left was a tall angel and he was looking
at you as you scribbled away. It seemed to me that he was waiting for you to
finish writing and give him the scrolls.

Visions of Sam

Friday 22nd August 2014


I saw myself with a group that was sent on a mission to the earth. In the
team was Pastor Johann who was leader of the team. I saw the team will be
split up when they come to the earth in different families and places and
then meet again to serve the Lord together according to their calling. I also
saw other groups/teams of spirits being commissioned and ordained to be
sent to earth on missions. There were different groups sent for the endtimes.
I saw and felt and sensed what I will become. I will become a spiritual
warrior in Christ’s love leading the Lord’s armies.

Sunday 24th August 2014


During worship I was taken to the throne of God where I saw the twenty-
four elders spaced equally around the throne of God worshipping the Lord
above. When I looked up I saw the glory of God was like a mega diamond
star emanating rays of colourful lights and spectrums of lights shining so
brightly that the light beams out and never ends. I also saw cubes rotating
and moving together. I saw Pastor Johann with many armies of angels
around him in a tactical formation that is a complex mathematical equation
that has infinite combinations and permutations that have never been done
before by angels.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 77


Monday 8th September 2014
I had a flashback of the time before I came to the earth that I chose to follow
Pastor Johann to come at the most critical time, which is the end of days
and the Rapture. I also saw that I was involved in leading armies of angels
before the Rapture worshipping the Lord while riding the white horse.

Tuesday 9th September 2014


During prayer I saw what I was in my predestination. I was like a highly
skilled warring angel that can easily merge with other angels, a merging
specialist. I was like an invisible soldier that puts on different clothing and
garments on me that are different angels. I saw that I was trained and
developed my skills by being involved in the rebellion war and remembered
seeing Satan with his fallen angels. I was with the army of angels fighting
with the fallen angels that involved standing and giving off energy. I was a
high ranking commander of angelic armies. I also knew Pastor Johann
during that time but he was in another section in heaven under training
involving a lot of studying and education and had a big library, too. I also
saw that I had also trained many angels in heaven, too. I also saw that I
used a lot of chariots during my pre-destination.

Monday 16 September 2014


Saw more of my predestination. I was a high ranking general for the Lord
that was trained under Pastor Johann. He was a great teacher that trained
me patiently since I was eager and hungry to learn since he was very close
to the Lord and was a very wise teacher. He would teach me a little at a
time so I can practice what I learned and come back to learn more. I was
very zealous and hungry to grow and Pastor was my mentor and spiritual
father. As I grew in spirit, I stayed in his home to complete my training. I
will eventually be a teacher like him to continue the work of the endtimes.
He also has authority from Christ to add chapters in people’s books and he
added more to mine. He taught me to teach others and also to train angels.
Pastor has a huge long library of books at his home and people come
individually and in groups to see him often for teaching and discipleship
training. He was mostly studying and having fellowship with the Lord. I also
saw that he chose the team to be with him during the endtimes and he
specifically called them while the Lord was ordaining him to go to earth. He
selected a mixed type of people of different talents and abilities that he
trained. Not all were trained directly by him and his house in heaven is very
close to the Lord.

Thursday 18th September 2014


I went to heaven to the library and read my book and it said that I will
conquer and conquer and conquer… I also saw that this is Pastor Johann’s
library and that he is the caretaker of the library of the books of each

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 78


person and those of the Lamb of God. I also met the four white horses with
Pastor and they were in a cross formation and he said that I will work
closely with Glorious Dominion.

Friday 19th September 2014 at Mount Mukawir


During prayer I saw a man walking on the mountain and went to him. He
was Enoch. I later saw a portal next to the altar on the mountain so I went
to it and asked if I could go and was permitted to go. So I went in the portal
that looked like a channel of light going to heaven. I travelled for a few
seconds and it seemed like the place I was going to was far from the earth.
When I got to the place I was on a golden road so I started walking. I met
someone on the roadside that was sparkling so I asked him what the place
was. He said that it is the new heaven. So I looked around and saw that
there were golden lampposts with gems and the footpath floor was like clear
glass with diamonds and gems in it. I saw driveways and entrances of
people’s houses and roads. I also saw that there was as section that was a
void (still under construction). I also noticed that not many people are living
in the new heaven. Suddenly I was led to go uphill on a road to a mountain
with a mansion as if I knew the place. I knocked on the door and Pastor
Johann opened the door smiling and welcomed me in. It was Pastor’s
mansion. As soon as he opened the door, his big white dog jumped on me
and licked me. I went inside and saw Pastor had a group and was giving a
teaching class. I asked what he was teaching and he said about Jesus as
they need to grow in the Lord. I noticed one section of his house is
connected to a huge library of all the books of life and there is a door that
goes directly to the throne of God. I was his neighbour and Pastor said that
I had visited his house many times before and even stayed at his house, too.
It seemed that there are different levels in the new heavens and the higher
you are the closer you are to the Lord.

Wednesday 24th September 2014


During meditation I was taken to the library of the books of the Lamb of
God and Pastor Johann was there and showed me one of the books in
heaven. It showed that greatness in the kingdom of heaven depends on
humbleness. He showed me my book and said that my greatness in heaven
was dependent on my level of humbleness. Each of the books at the inside of
the front cover had humbleness written on it, that it was one of the
important keys.

Sunday 28th September 2014


I was in the spirit and went to Pastor Johann’s home in heaven and he
opened the door and there was no one there (he was teaching a group the
last time I went there). We had a one on one discussion. He told me that I
must learn to tame my tongue as death and life are in the power of the

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 79


tongue. He said I have a lot of energy and my words are powerful. He then
showed me many books and they were full of words and I got a message like
a ringing banner in the sky echoing “words” “words” “words”. Then
Pastor said everything that was ever made was created by Words! God
created everything by His Word, the Word was with God and the Word was
God. I got the message and the importance of the spoken word and
hearkened to what Pastor said as he passionately wanted me to receive the
message clearly and know it surely.

Monday 29th September 2014


During evening prayer in the spirit, Pastor came and I saw him standing in
front of my bed. He was glowing and sparkling like a diamond. Something
stood out from him and it was something like a pen in the location of his left
upper pocket (like if he had some sort of a shirt on that it would be there).
Suddenly, it instantly flashed before my eyes that Pastor Johann was a
scribe who wrote down what God says and some of the books and archives
in heaven were written by him. The revelations of the Lamb of God were
written by him. That is why all the books and archives are in his heavenly
home and he is the caretaker of the library. He even wrote the book on the
Millennium and knows what will happen and our roles there. That is why
during my predestination, I saw that he was hidden from most people behind
the scenes. He was in the library writing and studying the books on what
God said, putting the archives together and studying the archives
thoroughly. He was very close to God since he studied the Word of God; a
lot of which he wrote down but not many in heaven knew about his role.
Only some knew that he was very close to God and very great in the
kingdom of heaven. Pastor only revealed his true identity to those that are
close to him – those that he chose to join his team and agreed to follow him
to planet earth. Furthermore, he had handpicked the people to work with
him in the endtimes because he had trained them and also read their books.
I recalled that before we were sent to earth from heaven to fulfil our
predestination that Pastor was first ordained by God and then by the
spiritual power of the Holy Spirit, each one that he selected was drawn to
him to be ordained together as a team to come down during the endtimes.
But each one still had the choice to follow or not, to decide when to come to
earth, with him or not. We all have a set of mission on earth and when
completed and raptured, we will have a new set of roles in the Millennium;
which will be shown only in the Millennium dimension. During morning
prayers, I saw the pen that Pastor had and when I looked closely, it was a
pure gold pen that had engraved upon it “The Word of God” as he writes
down what the Lord says.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 80


Wednesday 3rd December 2014
Pre-destination flashback
I saw my training and how I met up with Pastor Johann during my pre-
destination. I was already a highly skilled warrior fighting in many battles
and had completed many accolades for God (I believe I was previously
trained by others before hand from the Old Testament like Elijah, Samson,
David, etc. and that is why I have elements of their characters making me
unique in God for his Glory). However, my greatest desire was to be with
God, to be as close to him as possible.
I know Pastor was great in heaven as he was known to be a great teacher as
I saw him train others too and wanted to get further training from him with
the main purpose to be closer to God. I remember I travelled to his house
and knocked on his door and with my attitude of having achieved so much
and reaching a certain ranking that I can get approval from him to get his
training. But my approach to him was pushy, like I deserve it, like imposing
it that I am worthy for him to training- like a Samson pushing my way. But
he said “No you are not ready” and closed the door. I left disappointed and
head down and wondered “Why am I not worthy, I did so much but what
else can I do??” But my heart’s desire was to be close to the Lord and my
heart was burning like a fire and I didn’t give up as I knew he was the only
one who can help me get closer to God because of where he lived next to
God’s throne. So I went back several times to his house and he gave me a
similar answer. I didn’t understand yet I persisted coming back to him
again as he kept rejecting my request (I didn’t realize at the time, but
actually he was testing).
My hunger for God to see whether I really wanted it as only when you seek
the Lord with all of your heart then you will find him.
Eventually I went to him pleaded with him. I humbled myself and asked him
to please train me and I will do whatever you want me to do like a servant.
He then said “Ok” and my training started. He used strange training
methods and they were different. He would give menial and strange tasks
which don’t make sense (as God’s ways are higher than our ways) but was
a very wise teacher. Initially during my training he sent me for many
errands, to send messages to people, deliver things to different places, take
care of animals, organize and file his scrolls, cleaning and these things too
for a long time. I remembered questioning in my heart who is he, he is so
strange but in my desire to get closer to the Lord I persisted. He didn’t talk
or explain much but just gave me work to do but behind all of these things
as I later discovered in my training it was that he was training me
foundational principles of God that I will never forget for the rest of my life
that eventually draw me near to God and also teach them to others too later
in my training.
For example through the many errands of sending me off, he was teaching
me obedience. By taking care of animals he was teaching me how to be

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 81


pastoral. Even he taught me fishing for some reason and it was related to
learning about faith (I think I have a pond/lake/park in my house in heaven
with animals). He kept quiet to me for long periods of time until I learned
the lesson of patience. He never talked much only gave instructions and I
just followed. After a long time I would catch and learn the principle
eventually and when I did he went into the next training phase which was
like a promotion as he gave me more responsibilities and missions from
God (it is like the Parable of Talents that the one talent was given to the one
with ten, and God will give more once they are proven to be faithful with
little). He also trained me how to live instinctively and teaching about
flowing with God and letting go to improve the flow. Later I also realized
that he helped me re-learned and taught me things that I thought I knew but
in a new and different way at a higher level such as fighting spiritual wars
by standing and giving off energy, leading others, working with and training
angels and armies/strategies, living by the power of weakness and the hard
lesson of the power of words, etc. I also remembered learning gardening
and loved it as he taught me how to prepare the ground so it was fertile to
receive the seed, cultivate, prune and take care of the garden and collect the
seeds and extend the garden making it bigger and bigger - he was teaching
me on preparing people’s hearts to receive the word, nurturing the people
of God, establishing them, planting and growing churches. (that is also why
on Earth I love gardening and fishing). I remember I also had a difficult test
on my love for God that tested whether I will be faithful to Him to the end at
whatever cost and learned the power of weakness by my yieldedness to the
Lord.
Through the many years of training, Pastor would reveal more and more
things about himself and my calling and working together and explaining
and talking more. One day he revealed to me that he is a scribe and writes
the Lamb’s Book of Life and that he knew me from the beginning because he
read my book. He knew it would be a hard training for me but if I was
faithful I would complete it as God intended and I did. I remember that I
reached a level where he took me to his library and gave me my book with
my heavenly name on it (meaning the conqueror) and it was very thick. He
said I can now read it but it was open ended – like there were blank pages
at the end meaning that my book can be extended so chapters can be added
to my book. I remember I was in tears when I read my book and when he
told me that there will be people for whom chapters will be removed
because they disobeyed God and Pastor has the delegated authority to
remove and add chapters. I was furious like a roaring lion of how people
can turn away from the Lord and resist Him after they have tasted what is
good. I asked Pastor Johann to give me their chapters to my book whenever
others peoples chapter(s) were taken away, to give it to me and I told him I
will do it, I will be faithful. He looked at me smiling and said “Prove

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 82


yourself and more will be added to you, my son” (as he was my spiritual
father). I said yes sir, to the Glory of God our Father.
Pastor’s and my true calling revealed:
While reading of the scribe visions Pastor has added to his autobiography
from the people at COG in “The Road of Glory,” something struck me in my
spirit that there is something more to Pastor than being a scribe. I knew it
deep in my spirit. Then it came to me - the word “Creation” and I saw his
true calling. He was granted by God to help create the new Heavens and
new Earth together with God. God gave him permission as it was his desire
to experience God in creating the new heavens and new earth (higher level
of creation) all for the Glory of God. (Later the next day on 4 Dec it struck
me that it was God’s plan for us to create with Him and by doing so will
experience God and the Joy of creating for one purpose only – to know God
better). This work was granted to Pastor Johann because of his pre-
destination and completing all the works for the Lord on Earth and in the
Millennium.
I then also saw that I was helping Pastor in creating the New Heavens and
New Earth and was creating it, too with him. That is why I saw a void there
when I visited the new heaven and new earth. It is because I am helping to
create the new heaven and new earth together with Pastor and have the
privilege to go there and we have the keys and access to go there any time.
(I believe there will be more joining us to help create the new heavens and
new earth, not many, only some, and I think it would only be those from the
12 Leaders with Pastor Johann but eventually over eternity everyone will
have the opportunity to experience God in this way, maybe this is the first
phase, the pioneer phase who will teach others as delegated by the Lord).
While writing the above download in my notebook, the Glorious Dominion
horse came and told me that this is all true. “This is your true calling to be
involved with Pastor in helping him create the new heavens and new earth
by the Holy Spirit for the Glory of God, as it was written for you.”
A scroll then came out of his mouth so I took it and started reading it aloud
as it was in another tongue, then the interpretation came in English by the
scroll speaking back to me saying:
“The Lord has spoken, The Lord has spoken, The Lord has spoken”
Then I heard the Lord speak from the scroll with His voice saying:
“You will lead my people to the new heavens and new earth. You will bring
them to me.”
I closed the scroll and said “Yes Lord.”

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 83


Visions of Janet

Sunday 22nd June 2014


In a room, surrounding is dark, Pastor Johann was kneeling down by the
Lord Jesus. He lifted up a scroll and handed it to Jesus. Jesus opened the
scroll and it was a very long scroll. I saw pictures on the scroll and it was
like a map of countries. Jesus led Pastor into another place or room and
along the way I saw the surrounding looked like ancient Roman
architecture. Then Jesus led pastor to a corridor and as we looked down,
saw multitudes and multitudes of people and they were spread as far as the
eye can see far, far away. Then I heard the voice of Jesus said, “These are
your people.”
Then the vision changed to a room where pastor was talking to a small
group of people. He was appointing different people to different countries.

Friday 27th June 2014


Saw Pastor up in heaven opened a scroll. An old man with white hair and
beard was standing next to Pastor. Both of them talking to one another as
Pastor opened the scroll. As the scroll was opened, I saw butterflies on the
scroll and the butterflies were alive. I saw a vision of butterflies in the
worship service and the butterflies rested on some people’s heads and some
on the palms of their hands.

Sunday 13th July 2014


I saw Jesus put a garment around Pastor and took his hand and they both
went up to the sky. Then Jesus showed Pastor the whole Universe and the
galaxies and the Milky Way. I then saw Pastor standing on top a hill looking
up at the sky and it looked like it was night time and full of twinkling stars. I
then saw Pastor in a room writing a scroll and as he was writing, tears
rolled down from his eyes and Jesus was standing beside Pastor patting his
back.
Saw pastor in an upper room, as there were stairs leading to the room.
Pastor was looking at a big picture with a map and it filled the room and it
was standing as tall as a human in height. The picture seemed to be made of
a porcelain type material and Pastor was looking at it. Pastor seemed to be
standing at the map and at other times he walked over to another side of the
room and started writing on a scroll. I saw many scrolls on the table.
Sometimes Pastor would kneel down and pray.

Friday 25th July 2014


Saw a whirlpool in front of Pastor, then saw Pastor taken up into the
whirlpool with a scroll. In the next vision, I saw Pastor in a glasslike
cylinder capsule and he walked out of the cylinder with a scroll. Then
pastor opened the scroll and looking at it; I saw the surroundings were very

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 84


dark and I saw like in the dark, many pairs of eyes were looking at Pastor.
Next I saw Pastor standing on the stage and a very strong spotlight was
shining on pastor. As the lights shone on pastor, the scroll caught fire.

Sunday 27th July 2014


I saw Pastor standing on the stage with the light shining on him and he had
a scroll. I saw people coming out toward the stage like wanting to take the
scroll. Then I saw something like half-human creatures but with a gluey
form and able to stretch. I saw Pastor still standing on the stage looking at
the scroll. Pastor was not affected by all the things surrounding but he just
looked at them and looked around. All the things around could not get close
to Pastor.

Sunday 24th August 2014


Saw that we were worshipping in the heavenly realm. While we were
worshipping, saw Pastor began to enter like into another room. Then I saw
Pastor sitting in front of a writing desk and began writing. Next I saw the
writing desk and there was a scroll flowing down. Pastor was writing on the
scroll and this time I saw Pastor was crying many tears as he continued to
write on the scroll.

Friday 29th August 2014


Saw Pastor in heaven worshipping the Lord together with us. Then saw
Pastor went into a room sitting at a writing desk and he began to write. I
saw pastor writing on the scroll, the wording was not English but like some
unknown ancient language. As Pastor wrote, he turned his head to his left
and right like he was talking to someone. Next I saw Pastor walking into a
big cave. There was light and I saw Pastor looking at the wall in the cave.
Pastor was looking at the unknown language on the scroll and then looking
at the wording on the wall. Then he began to move forward deeper into the
cave. At the end of the cave there was a room and as Pastor walked into the
room there were people inside who were locked up. As pastor entered the
room, many people reached out their hands like they wanted to be set free
and want Pastor to rescue them. Then I saw Pastor holding a big ring with
keys hanging on it. Pastor began to use the keys and the freed people
dashed out. It was like they finally got their freedom. The vision then
changed and I saw Pastor in heaven kneeling before the Lord and lifted up
the scroll and keys to the Lord.

Sunday 31st August 2014


I saw Pastor in a room with a bed and furniture around. Then I saw Pastor
standing in front of the window screen and began to kneel down, and as
Pastor prayed, he began to cry and sobbed. Pastor then laid his head on the
bed while kneeling down and was still crying. After a while, Pastor stood up

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 85


and walked into another room, sat down on a chair and started to write the
scroll again. After writing, Pastor knelt down and prayed and I heard a
voice said, “I heard you.”
I saw during the worship service Pastor gave each of us a stone and we
lifted up our hands with the stone and prayed. I saw Pastor in a room and
beside him there was a table. On the table were stones arranged in rows:
stones of different colours, shapes and sizes. On each stone, there were
names of people on it. Jesus was with Pastor and as Jesus pointed to one of
the stones, Pastor took it, looked at the name and wrote on a scroll. After
that Pastor put the stones in a box, I saw stacks of boxes next to Pastor.

Friday 24th October 2014


Saw Pastor in the heavenly temple, and he was talking to some people and
he was holding a scroll. As he talked, he looked at the scroll. There was a
big curtain in front of Pastor and I saw the curtain was opened and a big
world map on the wall. The scroll that Pastor was holding was also a world
map. The people talking with Pastor were like holding a discussion. Pastor
sometimes looked at the scroll that he was holding and at the same time also
look at the big map on the wall. Next vision, I saw Pastor dressed like a
warrior. He was leading a troop of soldiers entering a battle. Saw Pastor in
a battlefield and saw a campsite was built. Pastor was inside one of the
camps talking to his soldiers. They were looking at the scroll of map like
discussing strategies and plans on how to defeat the enemy.

Friday 14th November 2014


Saw Pastor looking at a very, very big map on the wall. On the map were
many, many red dots stuck on it. And on each dot, there was a photo of a
person next to it. Pastor and some people were talking and discussing about
the map. While they were talking, I heard the voice, “Ten thousand
churches.” Then the vision changed and I saw Pastor in a worship service
holding up the same map with the red dots and photos to the congregation.
Then Pastor pointed to the map and told the people, “The ten thousand
churches we are going to build.”

Sunday 16th November 2014


Saw Pastor looked around a wall that had maps of countries hanged on it
filling the wall and all four corners. Pastor took time to look at each map
and studied it intensively. As Pastor looked at each map, he began to pick
up a scroll and wrote on the scroll. There were many scrolls all over the
floor. Sometimes Pastor walked around, do some thinking, sometimes
Pastor knelt down and prayed. Then I saw Pastor lifted up all the scrolls to
the Lord Jesus and Jesus was pleased and began to bless it, and heard the
voice, “Send forth.” Then I saw Pastor brought all the scrolls to a worship
service. He placed all the scrolls on the pulpit and began to speak to the

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 86


people. He told the people that they will be sent out to the world to build
churches. He asked the people to look at the scrolls, and then he asked,
“Are we prepared?” Then I saw a big thermometer on the wall and the
scale was moving up and down (the red marker inside). Then Pastor said
some people’s scale were right below and they were cold to the Lord, some
people’s scale move up a little bit or to the centre and they were lukewarm.
There were also some in which the scale moved upwards and shot to the top.
These were the people who were on fire and ready for the ministry. They
were ready to go. Then Pastor asked the people, “What is your scale?”

Exhortation

All of the above visions seen by three witnesses are true and the spiritual
events that are seen did take place. There were more than three people who
had seen me in visions with the scrolls. As our Father God saw it
expeditious to reveal such things at this time, this portion of revelation is
given forth. It will divide many people because it is controversial (but not
unbiblical or contrary to biblical theology for the Bible is silent on many of
these heavenly things) and hard to accept. But we have no more time to
waste and it is time to rally the glorious church to come together. As you
read this, and if you are among the members of the glorious church that are
called to join with me together in preparing for the final revival in these
endtimes and the Rapture, then repent for not loving God with first love, set
your house in order and prepare for the second coming of our Lord in the
Rapture. Deep in your heart and soul, you will know if you are amongst
those that God is calling to be part of this revival. Some of you have
forgotten why you came here to planet earth, while others are distracted
with the temporal things of this life. It is time to Awake! Awake! For the
midnight hour has come and our Lord Jesus Christ is coming soon to gather
His glorious church unto Himself (Matthew 25:6; 2 Thessalonians 2:1).
Awake! O church of our Lord Jesus Christ to your eternal glorious destiny!

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 87


Chapter 14
The Beginning of Miracles
There have been so many things that have taken place since our trip last
September 2014 which is the midnight hour and we officially enter into the
time of thrusting in the sickle – the harvest of souls or the last week of the
times of the Gentiles, which prophetically is the last seven times seven years
(Deuteronomy 16:9). One of the first things that emerged from the
September 2014 trip to Madaba and Mukawir was the calling and
appointment of the first and second generation. I was shown that in
predestination, we had selected all the top five hundred leaders for this
revival who consists of the thirty mighty men and women, the seventy
second level leaders and then the one hundred and twenty third level leaders
of the first generation. Amongst the second generation, I was shown the
selection and the commission of the twelve who are like my children and
disciples of Christ whom I have personally trained both in pre-earth life and
also in this earthly life. They each have the ability to communicate to me
and to one another in the spirit (these qualities are not present in the twelve
yet but will be developed and strengthened during this revival. These form
the first rank of leaders who will be present when the church is taken in the
Rapture.

Amongst the next group of people working with these are the seventy and
the hundred and twenty. The twelve are divided into four groups, each led
by one of the four living creatures around the Throne (Revelation 4:7-8).
They will be strengthening the four groups with the glory of God. In
December 2014 around Christmas period, Arion, who was with us in the
Madaba and Mukawir trip, learned to hear and talk in Spirit, through the
permanent energizing of one of the living creatures. Sam had already started
to communicate with me through the Holy Spirit and he had seen some of
the twelve (Arion was one of those whom we saw). All the twelve are like
my sons and daughters from pre-earth days training with me and in this
earthly plane, also my spiritual sons and daughters. The two main leaders of
these twelve are Sam, who is overall in charge of the twelve and works with
OthoJacEl, the manifestation of the Lion of the four living creatures, and
Arion, who is second in command and works with JamiaJacEl, the
manifestation of the Ox of the living creatures. Each of the living creatures
can manifest in either four formats of ox, man, lion or eagle but they take
certain glory forms to imbue that particular energy and life into their
charges. We have been discovering several of those amongst the twelve this
year and also those amongst the thirties and the seventies of the first and
second generations.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 88


All these were activated only after the previous trip to Madaba and
Mukawir in September 2014. It was their test to pass to qualify themselves,
though some have failed to qualify themselves and others have taken their
places. Destinies have been received and destinies have been changed.
Some destinies have been lost permanently. The warnings have already been
given before the September 2014 trip that if people did not prepare
themselves or respond to God in time before September 2014, that they will
lose their destinies. The good thing is that salvation has still not been lost
amongst those who lost their destinies; others have taken their places and
their anointings. There are many more tests and overcoming to be done for
those who are joining in this endtime move, as well as those who are already
moving in. All are to be qualified by God the Father in the race to fulfil
God’s perfect plan for His bride and for positions in the new heavens and
the new earth. Even those without predestination of positions on the present
earth have qualifications for positions in the new heavens and the new earth
and in the Millennium. The apostle Paul himself strived to qualify himself,
not for salvation for it is free, but for the prize of the high calling of God in
the age to come (Philippians 3:12-21). Irrespective of predestination, for
predestination does not guarantee success, surrounded by the cloud of
witnesses of saints and angels, we must all run the race with endurance
looking unto our Lord Jesus Christ (Hebrews 12:1-2).

The Secret Trip from February 9th to 11th

Sometime in 2013, the Archangel Uriel told us to go in 2015 to three cities


to pray simultaneously after the forty day fast which would end on February
9th 2015. We knew that the year 2015 was the year the antichrist would be
born and somehow this call to pray simultaneously in Moscow, Rome and
Tel Alviv was very significant in the Spiritual World. We were told to keep
this trip secret and only a few selected people could participate in it. After
September 2013, we continued the endtime move with fresh impetus but I
did not forget the urgent instructions of the archangel Uriel. In obedience to
the command to do this simultaneous prayer, during the forty day fast of
2015 (1st January to 9th February – always the same date every year), I had
meetings with the leaders of both Sydney and Singapore church and I
opened the participation to them. With research done by Mark, one of our
Singapore leaders, we realized that the points of the lines that formed the
triangle reach through to Ayers Rock and also pass through Singapore
forming another bigger triangle. With that in mind, we organized a team of
seven groups, each praying simultaneously but at different times following
their time zones (morning time in Pergamos on February 11th): groups were
in Pergamos, Moscow, Rome, Tel Alviv, Ayers Rock, Singapore and
Sydney. The first four teams met in Pergamos on 9th February and then three
teams took one day to travel to their designated cities to pray.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 89


The maps below show the triangulation of the places:

Note: The group of balloon indicators in the smaller triangle are the 7 churches

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 90


Knowing that what was to be done was important to the angels and the
Spiritual World, we all set off on our trips at the end of the forty day fast
and prolonged the fast for another three days until we completed this
assignment from the angels. Since returning from this trip and over the
month of March, God started showing us the significance of the trip and
what was accomplished. The following are part of the understanding given
that has taken place (there are some things that cannot be revealed yet):
1. A new Spirit Being came from God and placed himself over the
three-sided base pyramid formed by the triangle formed by Moscow,
Rome and Tel Alviv. We understood before we went that we, the
glorious church together with the Holy Spirit and God’s Angels,
restrain the antichrist until we are taken away in the Rapture (2
Thessalonians 2:6-7). This triangle seemed to form a spiritual
restraining when the earth was one land mass (Pangea) and
civilization was restricted to within the area formed. The past,
present and future of evil are all restrained by this triangle. Moscow
represents the political capital of the antichrist until he establishes
himself in Israel as the false Messiah, Tel Alviv represents the
apostate Israel and Rome represents the apostate church. A new
authority and restraining power has been released into the church
with this simultaneous prayer act. It is also of interest that three of
the thirty archangels from the Universe set themselves over the
atmosphere above the three points of the bigger triangle: Suramael
over Ayers Rock in Australia, Archaraca’al over Moscow in Russia
and Rafebael over Jerusalem in Israel (Jerusalem is about an hour’s
drive from Tel Alviv and the physical distance between them of
around 68 kilometres is negligible from hundreds of kilometres
above the stratosphere and mesosphere of the earth. From above the
mesosphere above the earth Rafebael would be over Jerusalem and
Tel Alviv).
2. There was revelation given that this restraining of evil is also tied to
the decree of the Ancient of Days shown in the time of Daniel
(Daniel 7:21-22). The spirit of antichrist was at work all the time and
John mentioned of it in his epistle (1 John 2:18, 22; 4:3; 2 John 1:7).
Although the revelation of the decree of the Ancient of Days was
revealed in the time of Daniel, it refers to our modern period when
the antichrist physical exists. The year 2015 is the year in which
antichrist will be born and in such a year God has released the
fulfilment of the decree of the Ancient of Days that it is the time for
the saints of God to take the kingdom. It also heralds the rise of the
glorious church towards the end of the decade of glory (2006-2016).
All of Isaiah chapter sixty is to be fulfilled in the glorious church. It
synchronizes with the manifestation of the sons of God as mentioned
by the apostle Paul (Romans 8:18-21). It also flows with the rise of

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 91


the fullness of all the ministries in Ephesians where the church
becomes the perfect church reaching the fullness of the stature of
Christ (Ephesians 4:11-16). All these verses speak of one common
theme – the rise of the glorious church in this endtime!
3. The third revelation given on the significance of the secret trip was
the outpouring of the sevenfold glory (Isaiah 30:26-27). The glory
that will be upon the glorious church will be seven times greater than
any other manifestation of God’s glory. On February 22nd 2015
before the Sunday service message, I read from Isaiah 30:26-27 and
mentioned that because of the secret trip, this verse is now fulfilled
as per the decree of the Ancient of Days.

After this secret trip, the Lord started to reveal about future events
happening in the world and more details of how the endtime move will take
shape and form. These revelations have continued from the end of February,
throughout March, April and May (which is the date of the writing of this
chapter – 21st to 22nd May 2015, just before the altar building trip to North
and South America).

Reassignment of Angels and Revelation of Angels and Spirit Beings

During the forty day fast in January 2015, Elijah introduced us to the
angel he worked with, his name was Astacuta’el. Astacuta’el works in doing
acts of power and wonders in the physical realm; he works in energizing and
helping men do acts of power in the physical realm. He was the angel who
fed Elijah before the journey to Horeb and energized him to run faster than a
horse (1 Kings 18:46; 19:6-8). He was also the angel who strengthened
Samson to do all the mighty works (Judges 14:6; 15:14-15; 15:18-19; 16:3).

In the week before the secret trip and towards the last week of the forty
day fast, God had continued to reveal more angels, spirit beings and their
names. Because of the need to establish the planting of churches, one of the
revelations was the name of the main general under COG Archangel (he has
ten generals under him for the ten main branch churches over the ten
thousand). He was sent over during the fast to meet with Arion in USA
because even though we did not know it yet in February, God knew that we
were going to plant the church in USA. His name is Ussasumael and he is
the team leader over the ten general angels. Also because of the work that
God will be doing through Arion, he was introduced to Estaterriel, who is
the spirit being under Raguera’el. Phanuel, the archangel who is going to
work with me in signs and wonders, also introduced Rovashael, an angel
under him to Arion; and Rovashael will be working with Arion just as
Phanuel will be working with me. They are angels from the Spirit of
Holiness. All the miracles of Jesus were done through the Spirit of Holiness.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 92


In order to flow with them in signs and wonders, we need to watch what we
do and how we do them; we must be holy unto the Lord for we belong to the
Lord. Everything we do that we are uncertain of, we need to check with the
Lord our Master first. The three Spirit Beings who worked with Jesus were
also introduced to us. The leader is Uccatucmael and under him are
Zerubbabel and Joshua (we know their heavenly names but are allowed to
reveal only their synonyms). The three together represent the witness of
water, spirit and blood - respectively (1 John 5:6-8). Archangel Phanuel and
the Spirit Being Uccatucmael will be present in all the Miracle services that
we are led by God to organize.

During the last three weeks of February to the first week of March 2015, I
had been praying to Father God and also speaking to some of the archangels
who had been working with us from the beginning of this endtime revival.
On 8th March 2015, Archangel Uriel was reassigned by the Father God and
he came and spoke to Arion. Arion felt the presence of the room changed
and a holy presence that came with reverential fear. It was Archangel Uriel
and he said, “I have come to introduce myself to you. I am to let you know
that I am will be working with Ps Johann and you and I will be the one who
strikes down any of those who come against and oppose the work of the
Lord.” Then he left and was gone. He visited Arion three days later and
since then Archangel Uriel has been visiting and working with me, Arion,
Sam and all of the other twelve. Sometimes they know it and sometimes
they don’t.

It was Archangel Uriel who revealed the names of the other Angels in
charge of the nations of USA, Canada, Mexico and various other nations.
We have come to understand that the main angels in charge of nations have
a correspondent Spirit Being under them whom they worked with. The
Archangel over USA is Tussayulazzulael and the Spirit Being under him is
Ramulacmael; the Archangel over Canada is Aruectmael and the
corresponding Spirit Being under him is Ukmatucmael; the Archangel over
Mexico is Sumaetmael and the Spirit Being under him is Sussuma.
Archangel Uryaluzzael, who is the Archangel over the planet earth and also
over Australia, also made an appearance during the introduction of the
Angels’ names and he said, “I am here because the Angels that you are
meeting are the Authorities over these nations and are under me. Nothing is
allowed to happen in these nations without the permissions from these
Angels.” In the order of God’s dispensation on planet earth, nothing
happens without permission from Uryaluzzael on the earth and in the
nations nothing happens without permission from the Authorities over these
nations (Daniel 10:20-2; 11:1-2; 12:1). The introduction of the Spirit Beings
under the Archangels over nations was done by Uccatucmael, which
following the protocol of the Spiritual World, shows the seniority of

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 93


Uccatucmael over them. All earthly authorities and workings go through
Uryaluzzael, who of course, takes his instructions from our Lord Jesus and
Father God.

God revealed in March the energizing of two of the twenty-four Elders at


the Throne of God. Arion and I saw two of the massive Elders whose forms
were like plasma, with multiple colours of the bluish tinct with some reds,
gold, orange and shades of dark that were actually deeper colours and
transparent-like. They gave their names as Ekkaka’atael and Utmakatamael
and they were pure energies of the highest glory and powers from God.
They came from the twelve gates and were correspondent in energies to one
another.

Archangel Uriel was there and he said, “Father God has permitted the
revelation of the Elders’ names so that understanding can come with what is
about to be released. These two elders are channeling that glory to the Earth.
They have been assigned to send this energy and glory to the earth and they
are channeling all the energy down through the Universe to the planet
earth.”

While my spirit man was watching invisibly from the Throne Room of
God, Archangel Uriel said to Arion who was inside the cube, “Arion, you
are familiar with the Scripture of seven times brighter than the sun?” (Isaiah
30:26)

Arion replied, “Yes in relation to the Glory of God.” Then Uriel said,
“These Elders are assigned to channel in ‘Genesis-seed form’ of this energy
this year (2015) the seven times brighter than the sun glory to combat the
darkness that is being released.”

There was like a river of light, glory and energy being pulled from the
throne room through the Elders down through the layers of heaven to the
earth and it was all over the earth.

Archangel Uriel said, “This will be released in the North and South
American altar building. You must know and confirm this with Ps Johann
the timing for when this will happen. Things that have not been permitted
before will be permitted and things not allowed will be allowed.” The
conversation went on and there were other things revealed that I will write
about separately.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 94


Revelation of Future Events

Towards the end of February 2015 and early March, after the secret trip,
there was a revelation of what was going to take place in USA over the next
two cycles of seven years. God revealed about the coming civil war that will
take place in USA and also the political leadership that will exist during the
next two cycles before USA collapse as a nation in 2027. We were told that
the enemy is trying to start the civil war early and that we had to pray
otherwise the riots will begin even as early as the first cycle of seven years
(likely in 2018 to 2020). Upon that revelation, we called a three day fast for
USA from March 28th to 30th after the delivery of the prophecy for USA on
March 27th during all night prayer on Friday. By Sunday after the first day
of the fast on Saturday, the Lord revealed that He had heard our prayers and
pushed back the beginning of civil war to only begin during the second
cycle (2020-2027). We were told to focus our prayers on the saving of souls
in USA and the establishing of the COG churches there. The events of the
three day fast, the prophecy for USA and the evening gathering to pray on
the third day fast have all been uploaded to the website for those who want
to look through them. We had a second three day fast from April 4th to 6th
with the objectives for the fast stated in the all night Friday prayer meeting
on April 3rd. In the second three-day prayer fast, we prayed for Canada, and
the establishing of COG churches throughout the whole planet earth. The
prophecy for USA, the prayer items for the two three-day fast is in the
appendix of this book.

There was also a revelation of the coming rise of darkness and satanic
worship propagated by fallen angels in the rise of the antichrist (after his
birth in the year 2015). All this false worship of satan would be clothed in
modern terms under various formats (Jedi force, new age powers, powers of
more advance alien civilizations, advancement of mankind into spiritual
powers, evolution of mankind to greater heights, the natural genetic
progression of mankind to mental power over matter, etc.) but they will all
be the revival of the worship of Baal like in biblical times. We were shown
that Baal worshippers will perform false signs and wonders in the rise of
antichrist (2 Thessalonians 2:9). They like the Egyptian magicians will turn
rods into snakes and water into blood (Exodus 7:11-12). They will levitate
objects and seem outwardly to heal cancer but the person healed will
actually be dominated by a greater evil power that will consume them in the
end (a lesser evil power causing the sickness yielding to a greater dominion
evil power). They will make inanimate idols talk. Mankind will as a whole
move from the age where all things are based on the law of physics to the
actualization of physical manifestation through spiritual forces that they
think is purely a higher alien source of energy. Some will directly worship
Baal to tap on these powers. The Lord in showing these endtime things

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 95


showed us three main ways in which He will enable us to restrain these
manifestations of evil until it is allowed to run loose after the Rapture.

The Lord first revealed that we would be empowered all over again like
Moses confronting the magicians of Egypt to confront the worshippers of
Baal. The three signs that Moses did were allowed to be done once again in
these endtimes: the sign of the rod turning into snake, the turning of water
into blood and the sign of the leprous hand. During the signs performed in
the modern days, God would allow scientists and doctors and laboratory
technicians to be present to allow them to examine all these signs under the
microscope. When the Lord showed to Arion and me the desire of the
enemy to increase Baal worship, we sought the Lord for His wisdom in how
to combat the rise of the enemy during these times of the antichrist rising.
The Lord showed three ways in which we are to combat the enemy:
Judgment, Greater Power and Praise Worship (bringing in the new glory of
the Lamb of God in New Jerusalem). Judgment includes the need to call
down fire (only under instruction from the Lord) to consume the idols of the
false worship of Baal, the ten plagues of Moses, angels striking people
down like an angel struck down Herod, etc. after giving a chance for
repentance to all like Elijah did. Greater power involves the demonstration
of signs and wonders and creative healings. Praise and worship involves the
release of the glory of the Throne room from the four living creatures and
the new glory of New Jerusalem where the Lamb of God is manifest.

During the revelation of the events taking place in USA, the Lord also
revealed that there will be two main rebellions that will take place in COG
churches throughout the world. The reason He revealed it early is so that we
can start praying over it to minimize its impact as by then we will be
millions, and possibly billions in number by that time. The first rebellion
will be in two parts and will take place during the war years of 2027 to
2034. My spirit man saw these things from the Throne Room but they have
also been given to Arion, one of my twelve sons in the Lord. I will leave it
in his words as it is a prophecy for him to deliver that must be recorded
down.

The following in Arion’s words:

Then Jesus came and said, “I want to tell you of what is to come in the
church. In the period of wars from 2027 to 2034 there will arise a rebellion
in the church where the enemy will try to split the church. There will be two
times this will happen in this period. Then in the time where Pastor Johann
is taken up, there will be a similar time when Sam takes the Leadership of
the church and the sign that is given must be done again to settle the

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 96


leadership issues. In these times you are to support Ps Johann and Sam and
to stand with them and hold them up. Do you understand, Arion?”
I said, “Yes, Lord, I Love you and them I will do as you have instructed.”
I said, “Jesus, even after all these signs and miracles and fulfillment of
prophecy, after all these things there will still be those in the Church who
will do such a thing?”
And Jesus said, “Yes, they did it in Moses time and it will come again in this
time. Arion even when this prophecy is shared and given to the church of
these things to come and the Warning I am now giving for you to share to
the churches they will still do these things.”
I asked, “Is this wet cement, Lord can this be averted?
Jesus said, “What is wet cement are the number who will fall and the extent
of the fall. There are two that will for sure fall, and they will be in the
Leadership team of 500 that Ps Johann is putting together with Me. They
will not be in the 12 or the 30 mighty men.”
I said, “This will happen even after they are trained in heaven?”
Jesus said, “Yes, something in their hearts is not right and this will
happen.” I said, “O Lord how will these things be?”

Jesus went on to say, “In the mid part of the 7 years, Ps Johann will make
a decision that many will not like but be assured it is from Me and it is to be
done. When this happens, there is a level of leadership that is underneath
the 500, they are a group that is skilled in politics and management of the
church bodies in different regions. There will be a group of them that will
get upset and angry with Ps Johann and the top leadership of 12 and 30.
They will influence one in the 70 and one in the 120. I want you to pray
about all this and be interceding for it. Although these two will fall, I have
prepared a plan for them to be restored. I will have mercy on them if they
repent because of the anointing I have put on them. And like Miriam who
was put out the camp for 7 days, these must be put out for 7 months. They
must go through the time of separation and obey the discipline of the Lord if
they do pass they will be allowed back in and restored. However, if they
continue to rebel and do not repent they are to be judged and Ps Johann is
to call down this judgment on them. The ground will open up and swallow
them. This is wet cement. If prayers and intercession and the warnings are
heeded then only those two of the 70 and 120 will fall, but if not more in the
70 and 120 will fall and if they do not repent they will be judged and this
judgment will happen. This is only given for Ps Johann to do and it will be
given as a judgment if they don’t repent.”
Jesus said, “If more end up falling from the groups of the 70 and 120 then
they are all to be judged this way. If they do not repent they all will be
swallowed up in this way. And if these are not restored and they continue in
the rebellion not only will they die but then they are to be replaced as Judas
was by Matthias.”

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 97


I said, “O Lord, have mercy.”

Then Jesus said, “I am having mercy I am warning them ahead of time.


This hard judgment will come because they have been trained in heaven,
have been warned beforehand and still they will come against Me and My
Leadership. I look at this as a personal attack on Me.”
I was grieved about this. Jesus said, “Arion you must pray and the
Leadership must pray and the church must pray in this time against this
spreading.”
Jesus said, “If the intercession is made and the growth of the individuals
around these two people happen; this will be averted and only the two will
be judged and they will be restored.”
I said, “Which groups will these two be in?”
And Jesus said, “One in the 2nd Generation of the 70 and one in the first
generation of the 120.”
Then Jesus said, “The reason why there is potential mercy going to be
showed to the two is because the rebellion will not start with them. It will
start in the group under them which is an assignment designed by the enemy
to destroy the church. The group under the top Leadership team who cause
this rebellion in My church and will be harshly judged. They will not have
the anointing to protect them and will knowingly give themselves over to the
enemy to be used.”

“This is how it will happen, once the decision is given from Me and given to
Ps Johann and Ps Johann releases it in the church. This group will get
angry about it and open the door in their heart to the spirit of the Anti-
Christ and the Enemy. They will get so angry about it that they will start to
entertain the enemy. At this point they can still repent of the thoughts and
intents of their hearts and they will not enter into Judgment. But if they
don’t stop these thoughts and cast them down and extinguish the anger in
their hearts then they will go out of their houses to spread this rebellion. At
this point in time as they go out of their house to spread this or if they
contact another while they are in their house to spread it the enemy will
enter them and they will now be one with the influence of the enemy and I
will judge them and they must be judged. At this point in time, when they
reach this point of attacking the church Leadership and spreading the attack
to turn others hearts against My established leadership, they are to be
judged harshly with fire like the sons of Korah. At this point they have
crossed over from dealing with it with Me and being able to get it right. I
will let them know by My spirit what is right. However, when they reject My
word to them they will then be siding against Me and joining the enemy.
These leaders do not know that the fallen angels will be looking for vessels
of entrance and that they have just given them place. They will become like
those who are judged because they didn’t let go of their idol who talks

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 98


abomination. They will be burned up the same way along with all of those
who follow them. There is no turning back for them they are now one with
the enemy and the enemy behind them is to be publically judged,” Jesus
said.

Jesus continued, “The reason why the ones in the 70 and 120 will have
opportunity to repent and have mercy is they are not the instigators and the
anointing I have placed on them will protect them from the Fallen angels
entering them, that is if they repent. The ones of the 70 and 120 will be
turned by pride and anger because they would have done signs like the top
but only a few and not to the extent of the 12 and 30 and especially Ps
Johann. The group who comes to them will ask why they haven’t been part
of the 12 and 30 and that they should be taking care of this matter. If they
were taking care of this matter then they would have done the right thing
and this wouldn’t have happened. But they speak against My will.”
Jesus continued, “I am the One who gave the direction and command in the
first place. Then they will question why they were not part of the 12 or 30
because the instigators will be like Absalom and speak flattering words to
them to take advantage. One will have a rod that they have used to do
signs.” “This is what is to happen,” Jesus said, “when this rebellion comes,
and these two rise up to question why they were not put in these Leadership
positions and they challenge Me and My decisions. Then Ps Johann is to
take a rod and depending on how far the rebellion grows all the rods of
those who challenge the leadership and put them before Me in the Church of
My choosing. Then the one that buds like Aaron’s rod will be the sign of My
leadership. If the two or more who fall do not repent at this point they are
to be swallowed up. The ones who started the Rebellion are to have fire
called down on them because they are now one with the fallen angels and
are not to be shown mercy. This is the first rebellion that will take place
which will happen in the middle of the years of war. The second one will
happen at the end because many will be upset at the loss of those who came
against Me and not dealt with their hearts properly because they will forget
the fear of the holiness of God. This rebellion will only happen amongst
those under leadership and in those who are not leaders. After the first,
rebellion those in leadership of the 500 will not allow themselves to go that
way again and most the church. The second rebellion will happen in the
same way but not to the fullest extent. These who rise up will publically
come against the Leadership and Ps Johann but really they will be coming
against Me. It is an attack on Me, Arion. These are to be judged with the
spoken word so that the enemy will not get in their hearts in the same way.
These will be struck down by My angels like Herod. The impression was this
will all happen publically - the protest and the Judgment. Then great fear
will fall on the church like after Ananias and Sapphira.”

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 99


Jesus said, “During these times Arion you are to preach against this and
stand behind Ps Johann and rally the church to Ps Johann and the
Leadership. I will give signs and miracles to confirm My leadership. The
final challenge will happen after Ps Johann is translated. During this time
the question that will arise is whether Sam really is the chosen leader. You
are to confirm this and you are to lift up his hands like Moses was lifted up
by Aaron. You are to stand by him and confirm as a witness that he is
rightful leader. Then the same sign is to happen for Sam as it did for Ps
Johann. All the leaders who think that they might be the leader are to take
their rods and put it before me at a place of My choosing. And Sam’s will
bud. All others are to fall in place after this and they will because they know
I have not chosen them. This rebellion is one of unbelief out of pain for the
loss of Ps Johann and will not be dealt with the same as the first. And since
the sign was given during the first time it will be used to confirm Sam when
there is a question that arises.”

Then Jesus said, “During this time you are to give your rod to Sam as a
sign that you support him. You will not even put your rod with the others or
consider doing it. I was given the impression that even though some have
heard all these years Sam would lead because of grief would question him. I
also got the impression that if anyone supported Sam the sign of support
was to give them their rods. Sam would use his own rod for the sign but all
of ours who knew and obeyed Jesus would give our rods to Sam.”
After I heard this I was just shocked; I was like after everything, Lord, we
still got to do this again. I had an impression it would not be like the first
rebellion, it seemed more of a question of let’s make sure and get God to
pick. After this happened everything would be fine. Then it was time to go
and the vision stopped.

In the revelation of the coming tests and rebellions in the glorious church,
the Lord also showed specific individuals used by the enemy and fallen
angels (unknown to the individuals due to their ignorance that their anger
and thoughts are stirred by the devil). I knew some of the individuals
personally and was so grieved to see their loss of salvation in the rebellion;
so much that during the three day fast I prayed and cried for the individual
and spoke with the individual’s personal guardian angel whom I knew. I
reasoned with the angel assigned that his failure would also reflect on the
angel, too and it is better to have this person go home earlier than to have
this person lose the salvation. I prayed with the Father God pleading his
case and over the period of the fast, the Father God answered and showed a
vision of this person and his family all being taken home early before the
period of rebellion. With this person gone, the rebellion, although it must
take place (Jesus said that the only wet cement is the number of people
involved), now only involves a smaller group of people and is not as strong

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 100


as before. Thus the two from the group of the seventy second generation and
from the group of one hundred and twenty first generation will not lose their
salvation, too. What a relief. It is too sad to see anyone ever lose their
salvation. Thank God for His revelation of potential future so that we can
change the things which still can be changed; and accept and work with the
things which can’t be changed.

Release of the New Glory of New Jerusalem and the Lamb of God

During the first three-day fast, I prayed fervently for the release of the new
glory of Jerusalem as Father God had revealed that this was one of the third
main ways to prevent the enemy from coming into places where the glorious
church is established (the restraining of evil and the spirit of antichrist – 2
Thessalonians 2:6-7). The new glory of new Jerusalem and of the Lamb
belongs to the future new heavens and new earth but Father God had
revealed that it was important to ask for the powers of the age to come now
in order to prevent the enemy from trespassing into the domain of the
glorious church (Hebrews 6:5; Revelation 21:27). I had a supernatural
experience of it being released which was beyond description. As I was also
involved in experiencing the two thirds saved (which was seen later in a
vision by Arion about a month later) during this supernatural week of two
three-day fasts, there were so many impartations and spiritual experiences
some of which are beyond recording. Like the Apostle Paul, I saw things
which were inexpressible in words and which were unlawful for man to
utter (2 Corinthians 12:4).

I would like to leave the telling of this experience in the words of one of
my spiritual sons, Arion. Just like Jesus just lived His life and left the telling
of the gospels to His twelve disciples, I would leave a lot of the telling and
witness of such spiritual experiences to my twelve spiritual children and
disciples who bear witness of the same experiences that have occurred. It is
the protocol of the spiritual realm to do this both now and in the future of
this revival and part of the training for those who are discipled through this
endtime move of God. Of course, this includes all those of the five hundred
and the three billion disciples we will raise for God as part of the glorious
bride of Christ. There will be many more miracles and supernatural events
that take place that will be witnessed by those who follow closely this move
of God, such that if all were to be recorded, the world would not contain the
books of the acts of the glorious church and bride of Christ; for we are to do
the works of Christ and the greater works of Christ (John 14:12; 21:24-25).
Thankfully, the angelic watchers keep an archive and record of all that is
recorded down. Also in Chapter 13, I have introduced some of the
revelations and downloads from my spiritual son, Sam, so now in Chapter
14, I would like to introduce readers to another of my spiritual son, Arion.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 101


Witness of Arion of the release of the new glory of New Jerusalem (30th
March 2015):
During Thursday and Friday morning prayer, I saw Astacuta'el come with
this small ladle like with the capacity of an espresso cup in the spirit with a
fluid in it. I drank it and I was able to keep up the praying and do all the
things I was supposed to do.
As I was praying this morning, Astacuta'el came again but this time he had
a bucket with a big soup ladle dipping cup. It was like two soup bowl cups
capacity this time; He gave it to me like the last times and I drank it in the
spirit and was immediately energized.
Then I began to worship and pray. And then I was progressively conscious
of being in the throne room in front of the Father. We began to talk and I
asked him for mercy on the souls of people in USA and throughout the
world and that His perfect Will would be done in the capacity of the souls
that could be saved.
Then the Father said, “Ok Arion it has been granted.” At the same time this
happened I saw the USA and other nations in this glory light get really
small and go into my spiritual bosom. It came in me and it was like I was
pregnant with these nations, the USA being the main one I started carrying
inside me.
However the Father said, “I have released this answer but you must now
pray them through until they all come into fruition. The greatest capacity
has been released but you are still to pray them through.” I got the
impression the Father was referring to us all in speaking to me (to all the
church).
Then I was very thankful and I said, “Father, I also want to ask about
receiving as much as I can. Especially, like Ps Johann, the powers of the
Age to come.” I said, “I desire and want these things and lay them at your
feet. In fact, I want all that you will permit me to the maximum capacity to
have. Everything that you will let me have in Your perfect will I want it.” I
said, “I even want and desire those things that I can’t even ask or even
imagine like in Ephesians.”
Then the Father said, “Ok Arion, it’s been granted to you.” I was
immediately happy and was like how amazing; I just asked and my Father
gave it to me. It wasn’t even like a hard struggle or a waiting for years; he
gave it to me the first time I really asked.
Then the Father again said, “However, this is how this must work. You are
a man underneath authority. You are underneath Ps Johann’s authority and
it will come to him first and then through him come to you. He will receive it
first and then lay hands on you and pass it to you and then you will walk in
it like him.” I said, “Yes, Lord.”

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 102


Then the Lord called out in a loud voice and said, “Urriectmael, Come.”
Then this massive angel came and stood right next to me.
He said, “Urriectmael is over the pristine section. He has come because the
glory of the powers of the age to come that is being released to you has to
come through the pristine section first before it comes to the warring section
that you are in. It comes from the Throne down through this pristine section
first and then to your section. It must go through Urriectmael first before it
goes to you.”
Then the Father said, “Urriectmael, Come and lay your hands on Arion.”
He came and laid his hands on me.
Then the Father called Ekkaka'atael and Utmakatamael and said, “Come.”
And what happens next I don’t have the words for it all but I will describe
the best I know how. Two time dimensions in Heaven merged together. I
didn’t realize this until the end but I wanted to start with this first.
Both Ekkaka'atael and Utmakatamael came and at the same time they
opened the panel into the 3rd cube where the new heaven and new earth are.
I saw this panel before it was like a big rectangular section that I saw the
new earth through that Ekkaka'atael showed me a glimpse of. But this time
both Ekkaka'atael and Utmakatamael came up to the panel and opened it up
slowly. As they opened it up the Heavens began to shake and tremble. I
shook. The ground in heaven and the fiber of everything shook, it was so
much that it seemed like everything might be ripped apart. But I then saw
Jesus and He appeared from the other side of the panel and walked into our
panel where everything was shaking in the Heavens. Jesus was slowly
walking and there was a river of glory flowing into him from the New
heavens and new earth cube through the panel. The two Elders were
holding the panel open and all the glory that was shaking everything was
being channeled through this river to Jesus. This happened only for a little
while. Then I saw Jesus get super bright and hold all this new glory in
Himself until this measure was reached. I then saw the panel close and
everything in Heaven stopped shaking. I was in Throne room and everything
at the time was shaking from this event. I didn’t see the Father shake at this
time but I was shaken up.
Then the Father said, “Arion the Glory that has been requested in the
Prayer list that Ps Johann has made has been granted,”
And I was shown:
5. Pray for the bride of Christ, the Lamb’s wife (Revelation21:2, 9) to get
herself ready as the glorious church, without spot or blemish or any such
thing (Ephesians 5:26-27) for her bridegroom, the Lamb of God. And that
the bride would even now in these end of days, received the powers of the
Age to come, the glory of New Jerusalem, the glory of our Lord God
Almighty and of the Lamb in Revelation 21:1-3 and Revelation 22:1-5.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 103


Next, I was taken and this is where the two time dimensions merged; it
seemed. I was taken to the place and time when the Glory of the Father was
being released to us in heaven and Jesus and you Ps Johann were standing
in front of the river of the Glory of the Father proceeding from the Father
that came through Jesus then you and hit us when the Elders where
channeling it to us and I was sitting on Victorious Peace and Jesus came
and sealed the Glory of the Father to us while he prayed for us and released
it.
I was taken back to this time and it seemed something was added to this
experience. This time, I saw me and I was back behind you like 10 or 20 feet
it seemed. I saw Jesus with this Glory from the Glory of the Age to come
that came from the 3rd cube the New heavens and New Earth. Jesus came
and stood in front of you; at this point you were kneeling down in front of
Him. And then the Merging took place, the Glory of the Father that was
proceeding from the Father in the River of Glory from the last time went
through Jesus again then went to you and then it seemed to splinter off to a
few more rivers when it came out of you, Ps Johann. However, one of the
main rivers that were going all the way through from the Father to Jesus, to
you came and hit me again like the first time. Then I saw Ekkaka'atael and
Utmakatamael come up and stand one on each side of me placing their
hands on me. I saw Urriectmael come in and place his hand on me also. But
at the same time it seemed like Urriectmael was standing by you also and at
the same time whatever was happening to me was happening to you first
with Ekkaka'atael and Utmakatamael putting their hand on my shoulders.
Then Jesus opened up the New Glory that was in Him to you. I saw it hit you
Ps Johann and for a moment you were absorbing it till it reached maximum
capacity and you then split. I saw your form in the Spirt split and start to
come apart. I saw you get ripped apart and I was like what is going on. I
had a peace come but a fearful awe at the same time. I saw all your spiritual
fiber ripped apart and then it seems like you went into a midst of light. Then
all that was left of you caught on fire. I saw this fire burn so bright it was
like what I would describe 7 times brighter than the sun. I saw this happen
and then in the fire I saw you Ps Johann pulled back together or maybe a
better word is recreated to hold this capacity. I don’t know the word but I
saw your form come back together while you were in this 7 times brighter
than the sun new Glory fire all around you. As you came back together the
river was still flowing, it seemed like all that was coming out of you after
this, like at the first time was the original glory of the Father.
But then, I saw the new glory river merge with the Glory of the Father like it
had when Jesus did it to you. Then it was released from you to me now. I
then was hit like you were. But when this happened in the Spirit to me, at the
same time I was hit in my physical body. And when I mean hit, I mean hit
like the strongest jolt I ever felt hit me. It hit me over and over and shook me
and I was going to describe this like I would if I got electrocuted but not so

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 104


painful but gripping. It was like zap, zap, zap so strong for a while. It
seemed like a 20 or so of them. But at the same time as I am getting zapped
in my physical body on earth, I was feeling in my spirit what was going on. I
felt ripped apart or undone and felt the fire I described that happened to you
and then I don’t know how to explain it but I was taken apart like you and
re-created or re-put back together to hold this glory. The words I was
undone are the only thing I could think of to describe this as a term from the
bible, but it was more than that, it was so much more.
After this, the Father said to me as I was taken from this place with all this
impartation back to my body that this, Arion, was the first measure. And
that was it, I was back to myself, recovering from the zap and all that just
happened, I cried and cried for a while cause I was overcome and couldn’t
help but saying the Lord He is God, the Lord is Holy, Holy, Holy, I was on
my face in my prayer closet. I immediately was energized and no longer
tired at all. My insides felt on fire and I was like in the fire. Then I got ready
for the prayer service. End

Three weeks later on 22nd April 2015, Arion also visited the new
Jerusalem where he met up with me. He also bore witness to the vision of
the worship of the four living creatures giving life to the entire Universe as
described in one of the visions shared during preaching. Arion’s account,
which included a beautiful visit to the Garden of Eden and to the
Millennium period, is an accurate description of what these places are like
including the New Jerusalem:
I saw an entrance to what looked like a garden. It reminded me of the other
day when I had a flash vision about the Garden of Eden. This entrance had
this gate-like thing that seemed like solid white stone substance. I looked at
one of the Pillars of the gate on my left side and it had like a ball on the top
and then a squared shaped long piece that was on it. I then began to walk
toward it. I noticed now that I was accompanied by Uriel, I tried to look
more at his detail but my soul kept projecting things that I knew were not
right and Uriel said, “Just enjoy don’t try to make out the detail, see what
you can see.”
So I said, “Yes, sorry.” Then as we were going through the gate, it looked
like a ladder formed but it was like step-like stairs. And I saw this stairs
begin to expand. I realized there was a distance and as we were between it,
it was like the stairs grew and I saw the real geographical distance except it
wasn’t really affected by the distance. It reminded me of Jacobs’s ladder. I
saw as we were going down into this garden when I looked back that I was
coming from the Throne room down to the earth to this garden. Along the
way I saw Enoch and said, “Hi Enoch,” and Enoch said, “Hi,” and then I
saw what I believe was Elijah but we were all going to the earth with Uriel
by my side. I then saw massive big trees on my way down. It looked like the
rainforest canopy but there was no darkness. I realized I saw grey and dark

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 105


not because it was there but because my vision was limited. Almost like
when you get your eyes dilated and you are trying to focus; so like Ps
Johann have said that I could only see what I could see.
As we got to the Earth, Uriel said, “This is the Garden of Eden before Adam
and Eve fell.”
This was interesting cause it confirmed what my inner man was telling me.
Uriel and I began to walk in the garden. I saw the trees; it was amazing so
big and the life in everything was in a dimension that made everything
vibrant and like heaven. I then saw these big water gushers come out of the
earth and shoot into the sky and the mist was watering everything. I saw a
lot of these go off. I mean the water streams were hundreds of feet high. As
we were walking, on this path, I saw a massive grape; it was the size of my
hand. I knew this because I reached out and grabbed it and I held it in my
hand. It was almost like the size of an apple. I then came into more focus
and saw the massive grape clusters. As I held this grape and looked at it, it
had a light quality coming out of it. And at the same time a sound tone that
emanated from it. As I held it was like I became one with this tone and light.
And when I let it go it stopped. It was a pretty cool sensation and
experience. I was like wow that was just a grape.
We then began walking and at this point I was only aware of Uriel now. It
was like he was showing me around the garden. As I was looking around, I
saw the grass it was so green and yet emitting a light and a sound and it
seemed the whole fabric of everything was emanating this light and sound
but in a wonderful harmony. I then saw from a sky view briefly, I saw the 4
rivers mentioned in Genesis and it seemed like it all came from one river
that came from the throne of God. I saw this dimensional opening on the
earth and it seemed Heaven was one with the earth at this opening. The
river of life flowed from this opening and broke into these 4 rivers and then
through the garden on the earth and flowed into the rest of the earth. I was
so amazed but only saw a little of this from afar.
But then from afar I heard the living creatures crying, “Holy, Holy, Holy”
by the throne and it seemed like the worship that came from the Throne
room emanated to the rest of all creation. The sound and light came and
brought a tune to the fabric of everything. And everything was in tune with
this worship from the Throne. It like all creation and beings here responded
back with a harmony in tune with the worship. Even the wind seemed to flow
with this worship. It was like I was in a symphony of sound and peace and
love and joy. And it all came from the Throne. I then started to look around
and what I could see of a tree and the ground next to it was that it all
interlinked in tune and had like light emanating from it when the sound
reached it. It’s like the sound and light and glory all diversified into
different manifestations in each thing and from each thing constantly
flowing back and forth, to and from.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 106


As we continued to walk, I then came up and saw this squirrel, it was more
well-fed and rounded then the squirrels I normally see. Interestingly, I don’t
like squirrels cause they are always causing problems and damaging things.
Then the squirrel said, “Hello, how are you?”
I was shocked said, “Good” and then it ran away. I then turned to Uriel and
said, “That squirrel just talked to me.” Uriel said, “Yes it did. Don’t you
remember Balaam’s donkey talked?”
I said, “Yes,” and thought but that was not normal and Uriel said, “Before
the fall, the animals talked.”
I was pondering this and just enjoying it all, amazed. As we continued to
walk, I came to this open field and I saw this lion. It was very big and he
was on this slant where the path goes up to the field and was lying down. I
wanted to touch the lion, I had no fear, so I went up and just started to pet
the lion. I felt his mane; it was so amazing, the feeling was so soft, the fur of
this lion was perfect and soft and this peaceful heat came from him. I
touched this lion and I was like this is amazing. The lion then turned his
head and looked back at me facing me, face to face, as I was touching him,
and said, “God is good.” The lion then returned back to how he was and
started to eat the grass on the ground that he was lying on. The Lion seemed
to be resting and going over how God is good. I mean like he was in
thought, yes, the lion seemed to be in thought as he was resting and was
meditating on God being good. Interesting to me that it seemed this lion was
doing this. And I then was prompted to get up, I saw a little farther away a
cow or ox that looked like a red cow and it was eating grass too. We kept
walking then I saw all these different animals, it looked like birds and deer
or antelope and maybe zebra types and so many others. And they were just
going about some in groups and they all seemed to have a song or chorus
about them as they went moving about in groups. Everything had the song
in it, so to say, and was receiving and giving a tune inter-changeably with
the worship from the throne.
We then came up to a place and I saw Eve next to the Tree of the Knowledge
of good and evil. And I saw the serpent with them and Adam. Adam and Eve
had this light coming from them too and it seemed a glory surrounds them,
too. Then Uriel either said or thought to me, “Watch what happens.”
Then they ate the fruit. And it’s like the fabric of everything ripped and the
song was taken away and this horrible silence came. Then the colours of
everything changed and it’s like I could feel death and darkness come in.
the light that was there changed and or diminished it was not the same
anymore like the Heaven or God element that I felt when I am in heaven
disappeared from the earth. I could no longer see heaven from the earth
either and it’s like the dimension of colours changed and limited and much
was removed. The harmony was gone, the song was gone, it’s like the flow
was cut off.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 107


It was very horrible to feel such wonderfulness and then it turn to this. I was
then like that is how the earth feels now, yuck; it’s like yuck, it’s a horrible
transitions from perfection to this darkness almost like it smelled bad now,
too. I mean the fragrance of peace, love and joy was gone. And this
darkness came and disunity of things. I thought no wonder creation groans.
I then saw Satan in darkness but he had keys of death and hell and authority
was like given to him that was just seconds before upon Adam. I don’t know
how to explain it but in the shift and tear of all the fabric, it is like the
substance or DNA that the Enemy had was over or in things now to a
certain extent. When before, it was Adam that had his DNA over all things. I
really don’t know how to explain it cause I don’t know what it really would
be described as in words I just felt it. And the whole earth was impacted by
it.
Then Uriel took me to the earth in the Millennium, I saw how the enemy had
turned the whole earth into volcanic-like ash desert and lava thing. It was
such a waste land and I saw it then being restored and turned back when
Jesus came. Then Uriel and said, “You will help the Lord and Ps Johann
bring restoration back to the earth.” I was like, “Wow, how?” And then he
said, “Don’t worry about that but that is what you will be helping to do in
the time of the Millennium, you will help to bring restoration back to the
earth. I then saw the vegetation come back and then Uriel said that is why
you were shown the Lion eating the grass. You will help restore things back
to how they were before the fall. The earth will be restored back and a
cleansing will come and when Jesus returns it will be turned back. It was
like the impression I got is that the DNA factor that goes into creation will
now be returned back to the way it was but this time Jesus will be the DNA
over all things or infused into all things.
Then Uriel took me to Heaven and I was in the Throne room and told me
that I would now see the new heavens and earth but I was not allowed to go
in to that yet.” I would see from afar like Moses saw the promise land from
afar. It was strange cause it seemed like I was there even though my spirit
body wasn’t, I saw my spirit standing with Uriel in front of the 3rd cube
panel where I saw the two elders opened it and the Glory of the Age to come
came. I then was taken in consciousness, my spirit body stayed in the old
heavens at the panel with Uriel and my consciousness was taken into the
3rd cube where the new heavens and new earth are. I then saw Jesus by me
and he took me to the throne room in the new heavens and new earth. It was
like the same thing in pattern where the throne room was in the old but the
new was so much more.
I then saw Jesus he was on a throne and the throne was like goldish light
but at the same time energy. And then I saw the Father and He was on His
Throne like in the old heavens but this time they were both on the new earth
too. I saw the Father and it was like he wasn’t restricted; if that was an
expression I could use to describe. I noticed the fabric of everything has

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 108


Jesus in it at such an increased capacity it as very difficult to see. It was just
light at first. I saw Jesus as a ball of light for a while till my eyes got used
to the light and I could see him at a more normal level. It took me a while,
and then I noticed both thrones Jesus on the right hand side of the Father.
And the amount of Glory and energy can’t be described. I know Jesus was
shielding me but allowing me to see and experience at the same time.
Then Jesus said to me, “Hi Arion,”
I said, “Hi Jesus” and Jesus continued, “I have taken you here to show you
some things. What you will be doing in the Millennium with me and Ps
Johann and what is going on here in the preparation of the New Heavens
and New Earth.” I said, “Thank you, this is amazing.” Then Jesus said to
me, “Arion, in the new heavens and new earth the Father will be able to
interact with His creation, with you and with everything and it has been
created so he can do this.” I then saw the Father come from the God
dimension into a form about the size of Jesus. And come and walk with
Jesus. I saw Jesus was in everything so everything could interact with the
Father.
I then saw Jesus and the Father merge together and become one being for a
while as they walked and then separated to be two different beings Jesus
and the Father. Then I saw Jesus and the Father and then you Ps Johann
appeared in the 3rd cube new heavens and earth with us. But you were over
in a group with Jesus and the Father and you started talking and you were
writing this all down. Then the Father said to me, “Ps Johann has been
recording all this down. He is here and is helping us finalize and finish the
preparations for the New Heavens and New Earth and also from the
decisions made here; it will impact what happens in the Millennium and the
time before that, the end times.”
It was like in this realm there was no time but it impacted eternity and how
time played out. You three were talking for a while, I was allowed to hear
some things. And others I was not. I heard a discussion about my part in
these times and places but I don’t remember details it’s like it got blocked
from my soul memory. There was so much discussed, timing, positions on
what people were deciding and qualified for based on their choices right
now in this end times. There responses and decisions good or bad , in
obedience or disobedience impacted right through who was chosen for what
in the New Heaven and Earth and before that in the Millennium. It was this
long conversation, but this is all I remember and was allowed to hear. Then
the Father after talking with you, Ps Johann, and Jesus, the Father looked
at me and smiled and came over to me.
Then the Father came up to me and said, “Hi Arion, I Love you.”
I said, “Hi Father, I Love You.” He gave me a hug and I was just so happy.
The Father than stood in front of me and Jesus came next to me.
And then then the Father said, “There is something inside you that you need
healed; let’s fix that right now there.”

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 109


He reached inside me and grab at first what looked like my heart and pulled
it out of me.
He said, “See, Arion there is damage here that I didn’t want but I am just
going to heal that right now.” And then He blew into my heart but it was
more than that. I noticed at first it was just my heart but it was really my
inner man being. He first fixed my heart and then said, “I am going to put
My love in you like I said I would.”
The Father said, “You will love like Jesus,” and the Father blew into me,
my heart and inner man and I saw the parts that were dark and messed up
healed. And I was filled with the Love of Jesus. Then the Father stepped
back from me and held my inner man in his hand. And I saw myself in my
spiritual DNA form with all this light. And then he took me apart. You, Ps
Johann, and Jesus were standing next to Him.
Then The Father said, “Arion, we are going to make changes to you. See
you are now going to see your creation.”
I then noticed that there was no time here. I saw myself formed like my
spiritual DNA substance. Then the Father said, “The changes we are
making here will impact the creation of you being made in eternity” or
something to that effect. He said, “Arion, see now we are taking you
apart,” I saw myself turned into a ball of light like when I was torn about
when the new glory hit me the other day, It was like this was the same event
almost.
And the Father said, “I am infusing Jesus into every part of you.” I saw
Him take some light from Jesus and put it into the ball of light that was me.
Then I came back together and He reached out and took some of you, Ps
Johann, and some of your spiritual DNA and said, “I am taking some of Ps
Johann’s DNA and putting into you.” The Father said, “I am going to
explain what is happening to you so that you will understand; you and Ps
Johann will have the same song or tune coming out of you. I took what I put
in him and put some of it into you so you basically resonate at the same
octave. Then I saw myself come back together and I had different light in
my spiritual body, I saw like different light being formed and moving
through my spiritual body that was still in His hand. It looked like He also
added some of Himself to me also and there was a lot more that happened
but I don’t remember it all.
Then the Father said, “This will help you be able to handle the
transfiguration that is going to happened to you in Pergamos and you won’t
lose any of it. Your spiritual DNA is now changed and your body will come
in line with it.”
Then the Father said, “Ok you can go back now.” I then was taken back to
my spiritual body that was looking into the 3rd cube where the new heaven
and new earth are. I then was merged back together with myself in the spirit
like my consciousness which has a form but not really; then I came back to
my spirit. I knew I was changed because of what just happened but when my

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 110


consciousness came into my spirit I began to tremble like something re-
aligned and my spirit changed; it also caused my consciousness to change.
I then began to cry out, “Holy, Holy, holy is the Lord God Almighty, who
was and is and is to come. And say you are so Holy, Holy, Holy,”
I started to feel that my fabric and spiritual DNA had been changed from
what the Father did to me. I was overcome and Jesus came to me and
picked me up and said, “I love you Arion and gave me a hug and I felt the
release of the Love that the Father put in my heart just overflow back out to
Jesus and I said, “With all my heart I Love you Jesus” and then another
wave of crying out to the Lord, “Holy, your so Holy”. I started to feel these
manifestations in my physical body, waves of love and energy just started to
flow through me. Then Jesus somehow strengthened me enough so I could
pay attention to what He was going to say to me next.
Jesus said, “You will now be working more closely with Uriel. He is going
to be showing you things about the Seven Thunders and you will be shown a
lot more about the things to come in this end time. Get ready, during this
fast that is coming up, you will have a lot of encounters and a lot will be
shown to you. Write it down and absorb it.”
I said, “Yes, Lord.”
Then Jesus said, “You are to go now and write this down.”
So I went back into myself. But it was very strange because even though I
was conscious of being here, I was still connected and conscious of being in
the Throne room still. Almost like the door is open.
I then was very energised and I was like undone; and I could feel tangible
changes in my being and physical body happening. Especially as I am
writing this and I had to stop and go home for lunch. On my way, I noticed I
could now tell the difference in fabric of creation around me. I could still
feel heaven in me as I went but I noticed that change that had happened
when Adam fell and all creation with him. I understand now about the
comment you made one time, Ps Johann, about the earth being like a toilet
bowl, I can feel the difference in the fabric of reality and it is gross. But
despite that I can push that away as heaven/ Jesus comes out of me and then
the atmosphere around me changes back to heaven, it’s so amazing. I also,
started to notice that I could pick up on the sound or vibration of things
around me. I noticed that there are still a quality of sound, and light, and
song but it’s not the same. It was very hard to notice from what I originally
saw and experienced before the fall because it was so perfect and great that
now it is so sad how much was lost. But I can tell it’s there. And it almost
seems like now when I am paying attention that creation is starting to
respond to the Jesus in me. I don’t quite know how to explain this. It’s like it
responds back to me like it did when I was in the garden before the fall. All
these things are unfolding and it’s so interesting. Driving back to work was
like I was able to keep heaven with me now, the peace, the joy the love the
song. And my atmosphere has changed. And it’s all changing, I can feel it.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 111


And all this while yet I still don’t have crystal clear vision in the spirit. The
Father is so merciful.

The Prayer for Two Thirds to be Saved

Between the two three-day fast from 28th March 2015 and the seven day
fast from 24th April to 1st May 2015, the boldness of God came to claim for
two thirds of the endtime population to be saved during the period of the
glorious church following the decree Ancient of Days that it is the time for
the saints to possess the kingdom. I reasoned with Father God that during
the time of the satanic rebellion pre-Adamic time, only one third of angels
was lost. Surely, it would be unglorious of the glorious church to only
escape with a remnant or a small percentage of humans saved in their work
of endtime evangelism. I also reasoned with the Father God that it would
not show forth the glory of God if satan succeeds in taking more souls than
the glorious church can win. Also with the release of the Spirit of Elijah to
turn the hearts of the people back to God, it would not have shown success
if it failed to turn back the hearts of the people and the majority of them are
lost forever. I also reasoned that to possess the kingdom of God on earth
now in this lifetime, the glorious church must succeed and must succeed
gloriously. Throughout all the history of mankind from Adam’s time to the
present, the people who walked with God and love God have always been a
minority of the population of the earth. I reasoned with the Father God that
this has not been good and it showed the lack of power amongst those who
walked with God. It also reflects on God that good has not overcome evil
especially when evil is always in the majority of the population. Surely,
Christ’s redeeming death on the cross and His resurrection power from the
dead can be released into this present generation such that it effect the
conviction and conversion of two thirds of the present population from now
to the end of days, to turn to the God who created them and gave them life.
In tears and prayers, I pleaded my case before the Father God that the
glorious church, which should be greatest glory that God ever manifest on
the earth, would be a lesser glory than the angels if we do not have the same
two thirds saved on earth and preserved; especially when the Scriptures
showed that the glory of Christ and His church are far greater than the glory
of the angels (Hebrews 1:4-14; 2:5-15; Ephesians 1:21-23). I felt the Spirit
of Christ interceded through me with fervent prayers and cries and tears.

I heard a rumbling in the Spirit World and it was like the heavens opened
and I saw the whole of the Universe was shaken as the Father God
answered. It was like the whole Universe shook and was re-arranged. It was
like finally, the crown of God’s creation, humanity redeemed by the blood
of Christ, had the faith and boldness to claim what rightfully belonged to

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 112


Christ. It was like the whole Universe, God the Father, The Word of God,
the Ancient of Days, the Holy Spirit, the twenty-four Elders, the four living
creatures and all the innumerable Angels and Spirit Beings have been
waiting for this moment. I saw the heavens and the earth rearranged. I saw
all the re-arrangements and re-assignments affected every living creature in
the Universe that God had created. The whole Universe seemed to expand in
order to contain the growth of the souls meant to be part of the Bride of
Christ, with the DNA of Jesus stamped into every single soul saved. For
weeks, I was wondering, if anyone else had seen or felt this total whole
creation Universe shaking; perhaps a vision, perhaps a dream here or there.
For the Universe had been changed! Surely, all life and all creation felt it.

Finally, on 14th April 2015, Arion also saw it in vision, and this is his
account:
I was listening to Kenneth Hagin’s ‘Knowing God as your Father.’ I was
listening and loving the Father. And I was taken in the Spirit. I saw Jesus
come up to me. Jesus took me and was talking with me, I didn’t hear what
He was saying at first, He brought me to come sit down. We sat on a cross
that was lying on the ground. I thought this was strange to be sitting on a
cross lying on the ground.
And Jesus said to me, “Arion, I am going to show you that you are crucified
with Me, buried with Me and raised with Me. And you are in Me, Arion.”
I said, “Yes, Lord.”
Then Jesus lay back on the cross and I was taken into Him lying down on
the cross and we were crucified together. I was in Him, and I saw through
His eyes.
Then Jesus said, “It is finished.”
And then I was taken with Him from the Cross in Him to down below to
Abrahams bosom or Paradise. And I saw Paradise in the centre of the earth.
And I saw the divide between that and hell. I only saw a little of hell, the
flames of hell and hear faintly some cries. But I was taken around the
paradise and saw a light in the midst of this great darkness in the centre of
the earth. Then I saw Jesus come into paradise and said, “I am the
Messiah” and some other things I didn’t get to hear it all. It was like what
was being shown to me was in fast forward. It would slow down and play in
the parts the Lord wanted me to see. I saw all the saints in paradise cheer
and praise Jesus as He preached to them.
And then I was taken up with Jesus and we went into the tomb where His
body was. We walked around it and Jesus said, “Look” and I saw myself in
Jesus buried with Him in that tomb. Next me and Jesus entered His body
and at the same time; I saw the stone rolled away and one of the big
massive angels came in and looked at us and bow a knee to Jesus and went
back and stand outside.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 113


Again it was fast forwarded and we went outside the tomb and I think it was
Mary talking to Jesus like He was the Gardener and I heard “It is I,” and
Mary said, “Rabboni” and Jesus said, “Don’t touch Me; I have yet to
ascend to My Father.” Again it fast forwarded and I was taken up to
heaven and we went to the Heavenly temple; I saw the Ark of the Covenant
of God in Heaven and as I looked, I saw the Cherubs on the mercy seat on
the top; it was all gold and looked like as described like in the Bible. I saw
the Face of the Cherub looked like that of the Ox, and I thought ‘Wow,
that’s cool’ for I wondered about that. And then I saw it change to the face
of a man and as I was looking and pondering this, Jesus came up and put
His blood on that mercy seat.
And then we were taken and we stood in front of the Father together. And
Jesus said, “I have fulfilled all You have asked Me to do Father.” And the
Father said, “It is completed, the debt is paid in full. All that is required has
been met.”
Then Jesus went to the Book of Life and sprinkled His blood on the Book of
life, and then I saw all these Angels in heaven going about with the Blood of
Jesus and cleansing everything with His precious blood.
As I saw all this, I saw Jesus come up again (I am not sure if this was more
detail of the first ascension or another), and the Father said, “Open the
gates” and the gates opened and Jesus came up with all the saints that were
in paradise. And they all came into the Heavens and were allowed into
heaven and the Throne. Jesus led them all.
I watched all this from the Throne and I saw all this as I was standing there
in front the Father. Then I saw this massive scroll, it was so big like the size
of bales of hay in circumference and as long as a bed of a truck it seems.
And it had wings on it and was flying and it said in gold on it like a ‘seal
looking thing’ 2/3rds.
And the Father said, “Give the Scroll to Ps Johann.” And as the scroll was
flying with the wings on it. I noticed the wings were Angels holding the
scroll delivering it to Ps Johann; they sent it before him. Then I saw Ps
Johann, and the Father said, “Eat the scroll.” And Ps Johann said it is too
much for just me, like he humbly wanted to share it.
And then the Father said in a loud voice, “Arieock, Come and divide the
scroll and give 1/3 of the 2/3rd to Ps Johann.” Then I saw this massive
being come with this sword and divide it equally in half. 1/3 and 1/3. It was
this massive scroll and Arieock gave the half scroll to Ps Johann and then
this massive scroll looked like it shrank into a smaller scroll and then
became light energy and go into Ps Johann’s mouth and I saw him absorb it
and this new light become a part of him.
The Father then said, “Arieock, Go and give 1.5 billion souls to Arion from
the left over 1/3.” And then the Father said to me, “Arion, you asked and
My son Jesus granted you the Spiritual desires on your list” and He said,

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 114


“It has been granted to you. You wrote down 1.5 billion souls and it has
been given to you according to the word now receive it.”
Then Arieock came over to me it looked like he took 1/3 of the 3rd of the
left over half scroll and cut off and gave it to me and then the same thing
happened, it shrunk into a smaller scroll turned to light energy and went
into my mouth and absorbed into me. I felt a change in me; this faith came
for souls and the things of God.
Then the Father said in a loud voice, “Arieock, Go and divide the rest of the
scroll among My glorious church.” I saw many people get pieces of this
scroll and they took it and eat it, I saw Benjamin, I saw Chichi, TL, Sam, I
saw so fast, like the COG team, and then many, many more (I also saw this
and all the leaders of Sydney, Singapore, online church and many, many
unmentioned ones were present in spirit form – Ps Johann). So many I can’t
count; I saw them get their portion and it went into them and they changed,
they had this new light and faith for souls.
Next the Father said, “Arion, you are My prophet among My prophets( as to
let me know I am not the only one), come and write down all that I show you
and give an account of what is happening here to Ps Johann and record it
down. Then the Father in a loud voice said, “Arieock, Come; Uriel, Come;
Gabriel, Come; Phanuel, Come; Uryaluzzael, Come; Michael, Come,” then
He said, “All the 24 elders, Come; all the Authorities, Come.”
I was allowed to hear these names but I also heard like a gazillion other
names being spoken so fast at the same time in the spirit. It was for me to
know that the Father called the hosts of the Heavens and the Universe to
Himself at the throne. I can’t possibly remember all the names I just knew
they were all called. I then saw the Throne room like John described, ten
thousand times ten thousands and myriads of angels and the whole Throne
was filled. So much so that Uriel came and stood beside me and said,
“Don’t worry about trying to see the details; it’s too much for you. Just
know and take in what you can.”
I saw so many lights and movements. And then I saw the massive elders
standing around the throne and it seems all the Authorities of the Lord God
Almighty were present to obey the Lord.
The Father then said, “I release the Faith, the provision and all that is
needed for this 2/3rds perfect measure of souls. Now go and change all that
is needed to take care and facilitate this move and release. I have decreed
already in favour of the saints and now I have decreed the release of the
2/3rds to be saved.”
I then saw like everything in the Universe, if I had the ability to really
describe it, begin to move. It all changed according to the word of the
Ancient of Days, the Father, who released it. I saw so much light and energy
moving around and being released. It was amazing and humbling because
this power was released to the church for this.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 115


Then the Father spoke to me, “Arion, what you seen is a testimony of this
Release of the 2/3rds, go and tell this as a witness. All the Faith, all the
provision everything that is needed has been released for this. All heaven is
now ready to receive the 2/3rds. Go back now and do as I have commanded
you My son and do not delay to write it down.”
I said, “Yes, Lord, I will do as you commanded. Thank you so much for all
of this.”
After this I saw briefly the Angelic hosts begin to have conferences and
meetings to facilitate and discuss and release all that was commanded.
Then I was taken immediately back down and began to write all this down.
It happened so fast, and I only saw what I could see, I knew there was so
much more going on. I just got a pinch of sand in this big desert of
happenings. But I have obeyed and written this down. As I am writing this
down, I am trembling and I feel tangible change in my actual body. I feel
lighter like I am going to float or be carried away and I feel full of life and
energy. I mean really, my actual body feels like it’s between two planes of
heaven and earth, visible and invisible. I mean I can feel my bones and they
are lighter very strange; it’s like my fibre and molecules are charged and
changed. I went to go for a, walk real quick and it’s like gravity is not the
same for me anymore. End.

Events that Shook the Universe

On Saturday 25 April 2015, in meditations and prayers, I saw the seven


plus one events that have shaken all the heavens and the earth and changed
it. The first event was the creation of heavens and earth. God came forth
from the God dimension and manifest as the Word made flesh. At first it
was just God and the Word and this was the beginning of creation that John
1:1 talked about. The Word was in the beginning with God and the Word
was God.

Then there was a movement of energies and light. It was more like an
explosion but because it was harmonious and musical I called it an
explosive movement of sounds, lights, energies, plasma, dimensions and
creations. Every movement produced life and all of the heavens and the
earth were created. I remembered the first amongst the creations were the
twenty-four Elders, the foundations of the Universe and immediately were
the worship beings to contain the energies released through worship, then all
the Angels and Spirit Beings simultaneously. All light, life and love filled
the Universe and the whole Universe was like a song in which God
composed and sang. All this movement was like God through the Holy
Spirit, which had Seven Harmonies (Seven Spirits) sang. Even though
creation was perfect with the life and song of God, every single spirit being
had consciousness and continue to enjoy existence in contributing to the

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 116


creation to make it more complex with varying life forms and sub-energies.
It was like the Angels and Spirit Beings took what was God's life and
energy and continue creating wonders of myriad creations that filled the
planets and worlds. At all time, only God was the I Am while all creation
flowed as that which was dependent on the I Am. The Holy Spirit filled all
the Universe and imbued it with spirit and the life of God that proceeded
from the Ancient of Days, the Word manifest as the Father.

All creation progressed and grew in continual perfection until Lucifer


began to think that he was the I Am, the self-existing one. He taught that he
could be the centre of the Universe. It was like fallen humans who never see
God and concluded that God did not exist and that they were the top of the
evolution chain of earthly life. Satan thought that all things existed as it was
and the manifestation of the Ancient of Days was just a phenomena in
which he could manipulate for his own self. The moment this came into
him, when he wanted to be God and replace God, darkness began. Darkness
is the cutting off of light. He started separating himself from the source of
life and darkness was found in his heart. It began to spread to those under
him but in his attempt to persuade all other Angels to make him their leader,
he commanded those Angels who had given him allegiance to leave the
created Universe and go beyond the borders of creation to create a new
Universe. To his surprise, those Angels and Spirit Beings ceased to exist.
Immediately, there was a separation of the Universe into three sections: the
pristine (which was the larger section), the boundary section, and the
warring section where rebellion had taken place.

Just prior to the Lucifer's heart becoming dark, God had already assigned
a group of Angels to boundaries and the time it took Lucifer to persuade
others to follow him and his demise when he tried to persuade the rest of the
Angels to follow him was about a million years (but about a billion years
our time as a day in heaven was like a thousand years because of the
activities possible). Comparatively, before the fall of satan the Universe had
existed in a pristine state for billions of years (trillions of years in our time).
There were activities and the pushing back of worlds and solar systems, and
the identification of them as to where they belong. The angelic rebellion
shook the whole Universe and infected it except for the pristine section
which God had separated out. There were gigantic beings who hold systems
of stars together who remain incorruptible (for example, like the planet
earth, if considered a being, is in itself not corrupt although the individual
life forms existing on it became corrupt - that is why the earth groans). In
the judgment of satan, who had made the earth his headquarters, two of the
moons of earth were destroyed. Satan rebelled outside of the earth's solar
system but made the earth his Headquarters because he noticed that God had
sent Uryaluzzael to planet earth. It was like Uryaluzzael was capable of

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 117


being of entire star systems with their planets but reassigned to just one
planet. Thinking that this planet earth was important to God, he made it his
Headquarters. God by foreknowledge had already had plans for planet earth
in revealing his fourth dimension (Revelation of Christ) but before God
could reveal more of Himself, Lucifer had rebelled and became satan. All
these were sealed in the Scroll with seven seals and in the Lamb's book of
life from the foundation of the earth. The rebellion of satan was the second
great event that affected the Universe.

The third major event was the re-creation of the planet earth. Satan and his
fallen angels had been judged and the whole Universe remained in a state of
three sections: the pristine and the warring section with the boundary section
in between. The warring section had been cut off from the light which was
the life of God. In Genesis when God said 'Let there be light,' light flooded
the whole warring section once again. All creation was amazed when they
saw the earth restored into a pristine state and the creation of man began. It
was almost like God had this on schedule and despite the rebellion of fallen
angels, God was continuing His plans to reveal Himself. Of course, some
including satan, thought it was only the restoration of the fallen section to its
former pristine state. All the creation that was dedicated to mankind - the
animals which Adam named - was not just for planet earth but it was to fill
the whole section of worlds in the warfare section. It was also the first time
that creatures like Adam were split into male and female components but
yet given authority and power to effect its mark on creation. Angels and
spirits have no gender and it was a wonder to see Adam, who was like an
angel before Eve came out of him, becoming male and female in its perfect
state. However, within three days (though it was like three thousand years)
satan, through the serpent that he planted into the Garden of Eden, caused
Adam and Eve to fall. When Adam and Eve fell, it was like all their DNA of
their spirit, soul and body was affected. Death came. This major event
affected all of the warfare section again and the fall was felt in all the
warfare section of the Universe. All the enemies of God were in evil glee as
they made use of all the resources that God had given to Adam to forge a
new rebellion against God. However, God continued to send His Angels
who were all redeployed into different responsibilities when Adam and Eve
fell. The story of redemption then progressed as written in the Bible but
watched by all the Universe.

The fourth major event was the coming of Christ to the world. All the
Angels and Spirit Beings were amazed at the revelation of God in the fourth
dimension (The Word made flesh). Not all the Angels understood what was
happening and the earth had all the attention of the Universe during the
manifestation of the Word in the flesh living on planet earth. The whole
Universe shook and vibrated over every event in Jesus's life. The pain that

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 118


Jesus felt at Gethsemane was felt throughout the Universe. At the cross, the
whole creation shook. If Angels and Spirit Beings could weep, that would
have been the most heart-wrenching moment to see the fourth dimension of
God taking death onto Himself. I weep as I write this for no sorrow on earth
or in the Universe can describe the silence, the awe, the earth-shattering, the
Universe-shattering silence of the six hours of Jesus our Creator dying on
the cross. Every atom in the Universe wept. It was simultaneously the same
event in Revelation 5:2-4 when no one in the entire Universe was found
worthy to open the scroll with seven seals. No one could bring the Universe
as it existed forward to continue the progress that God the Father intended
progression to be made. No one could resolve and remove the stink of evil
encrusted into the fabric of the fallen section of the Universe. Only Christ
Jesus dying on the cross, taking on death, absorbing all evil, sin and death
could purify the Universe.

The twenty-four Elders could not weep nor do Angels or Spirit Beings
have the ability to cry watching Christ on the cross. Only the human race
had the ability to express the sorrow felt in the Universe at the moment of
Christ's suffering and death on the cross. So I wept. So John the apostle
wept. We weep for the twenty-four Elders who could not express the sorrow
in tears. We weep for the four living creatures who could not express their
sorrow in tears. We weep for the Angels and the Spirit Beings who could
not express their sorrow in tears. We of Adam's race weep at this titanic
event that was needed to restore back the fabric of the fallen Universe. All
the Universe could do was keep silence. But we humans, we weep, we cry,
we groan and we are deeply touched and affected; for God has given us the
ability to express with our tears the thought and the sight of this moment
when Christ died for us, to give us the righteousness of God and bring us
into the holiness of God.

The fifth major event is when Christ rose from the dead. It shook and
transformed the fabric of the Universe. It was not only the resurrection of
Christ. It was like Christ had come into the very atoms and molecule of
creation and transformed it. When Christ rose from the dead, He resurrected
every atom and molecule and infused the nature of Christ in seed form into
it. The blood of Christ was taken to the very Throne of God and it was
absorbed and transformed and changed even the manifestation of the
Ancient of Days. Although the word 'changed' cannot apply to God because
God changes not, but it was like a new dimension of the revelation and the
manifestation of God came through when Christ rose from the dead. With
His blood sprinkled onto all the Universe, the life giving DNA of the
expression of the fourth dimension of the Godhead came into everything
and every single creation was touched from the twenty-four Elders to the
four living creatures to the furthest atom and molecule of the Universe. As

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 119


in Philippians 2:9-11 and in Revelations 4:8-11, every creature in heaven,
on earth and under the earth sang with the glory of the new DNA of Christ.
Now the Universe cannot contain what was revealed in Christ and there is a
need for the new heavens and new earth to express all the fullness which is
revealed in Christ. The seed of God has been planted in every atom and
molecule of Christ and now awaits the new heavens and the new earth to
reveal God the Father and Christ the Lamb of God.

The sixth major event that shook the Universe was when the Ancient of
Days decreed that it is time for the saints to take the Kingdom in Daniel
7:22 (released on the earth in our time dimension of 9-11 February 2015)
and we the saints on earth, the glorious church responding to this by
claiming that two thirds of the earth should be saved as is the pattern in
heaven when two thirds of the Angels remained true to God. It was a
Universe shaking event that caused every single Angel and Spirit Being to
be re-aligned to expand and receive a new life and energising from God to
make this possible on planet earth and in heaven. Every single life form has
been redeployed to release this coming of age of the manifestation of the
sons of God. The rise of the glorious church with the new glory of Jesus has
been long awaited for since the beginning of time (Romans 8:18-19;
Ephesians 1:4-5; 3:8-11).

The seventh major event that involved the whole redeployment of the
whole Universe is the second coming of Christ. All the Angels and Spirit
Beings of the Universe march with Jesus in victory as He comes and brings
the Throne room glory to planet earth. The extinguishing of all evil takes
place (including those from the end of the millennium sent back by quantum
time to the second half tribulation to be vanquished and exterminated at
Christ's second coming to planet earth).

The last and final event would be the ripping of the fabric of the Universe
at the end of the Great White Throne judgment, and the unveiling of the new
heavens and the new earth with the Bride of Christ, the New Jerusalem,
shining with the fullness of the glory of God the Father and of Christ the
Lamb of God as in Revelation chapters 21 and 22.

The Beginning of Miracles and Revelation of New Name of Christ

During the Lord Jesus’ various heavenly revelations and teachings, He


also revealed that this year being the genesis year, He would reveal that
there will be some special signs and wonders, creative miracles that He will
release in the year 2015. He showed three special creative miracles that will
take place this year: the growing of an amputated leg, the healing of a man
born blind and the instantaneous healing of a man with a heart condition

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 120


whose heart pacer and scars from heart operation disappeared from the
body. We will be sharing these beginning of miracles and the stories of
these people as they occur in the coming months. Father God has released
permission for Archangel Phanuel and the Spirit Beings, Uccatucmael,
Zerubbabel and Joshua to be present in energising healings, signs and
wonders during the Miracle Services. The year 2015, is a bright year that is
the beginning of the manifestation of God’s glory in a tangible way. The
works of Jesus and the greater works of Jesus are being released in 2015,
getting us ready for the transition into the decade of power (John 14:12). It
is indeed the beginning of miracles.

On the evening of Tuesday 28th April 2015, I was sitting on the piano
bench praying during the evening corporate gathering for prayers and
enjoying the atmosphere and sense of prayers and worship in the Spirit that
was going on when the glory of God from new Jerusalem came upon me.
On the previous evening of 27th April 2015 that same new glory had
enveloped me and taken me into a place in God, and when I returned into
my physical body towards 9pm, I had told the congregation that I saw the
three glories that surround the glorious church: the inner layer being Christ
and I was one in Him, and the second layer being the four living creatures
and the third layer being all the other archangels and spirit beings. On
Tuesday evening of 28th April 2015, I was again covered by this new glory
and as I was beholding Christ’s face shining with the face of the Father, a
part of me was seeking to know Him more and understand His fullness. I
was searching out in the Spirit the revelation of His new name in Revelation
chapter 3:12 which had been sealed upon my forehead. While enjoying His
glory and His love flowing with oneness in the Father, it suddenly shone
upon me and it was like I saw a beam of light spell out His name in golden
glory – The Lamb of God! I was stunned at first. It was so simple yet so
deep. It was all the time in the written Word but we dare not say ‘that was
it’ without revelation. For who would have the audacity to claim to know
the new name of our Master and Lord Jesus Christ without Him actually
telling us His new name. It was like a rush of fresh new energies from the
glory of New Jerusalem and New Heavens and New Earth came upon me.
Inside me, I was trembling from the revelation of His holy new name. Every
strand of DNA within me was like singing unto the Lamb of God as it felt
the impact of the revelation of His new name.

In every spiritual development of His people in the Bible, God has always
revealed more of Himself (to Abraham, the name El Shaddai; to Moses, the
name Yahweh, in the New Testament, Jesus Christ, etc.). Now in this
endtime move, we finally know the new name of our Lord Jesus Christ! The
glorious church can now march forth into the glory of the new heavens and
new earth name of Christ! This is so glorious and wonderful. There were

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 121


many other secret things God revealed about this new name which will be
unfolded in time to come. Something was sealed into me that night when
this revelation came. I heard a new song that seemed to arise from a worship
dimension of the new heavens, unlike anything revealed thus far.

At the time of writing of this chapter, we are about to set off for the altar
building trips in North and South America. Already, I have seen numerous
visions of the activities of Angels and Spirit Beings. There is a sort of sense
of spiritual excitement (if that is the right word) amongst the Angels and
Spirit Beings for the last time the seven times glory had shone on earth was
during the pristine state of Adam and Eve in the Garden of Eden. Now this
seven times glory had a new element of the Christ factor and the new glory
of New Heavens and New Earth. The manifestation of the Sons of God had
finally come! (Romans 8:19-21). It was like Christ had sown Himself into
us, and now the seed of God in Christ has grown to fullness within us, His
beloved Bride and church. It was time to gather us unto Himself in a final
march of glory towards the Rapture harvesting the souls of men unto Christ.
All the works of Christ and the greater works will be manifested in powerful
and abundant fullness in this end of days.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 122


Chapter 15
Miracles, Outpouring, Failures and Shakings

Everyone looked to the year 2015 with great anticipation and excitement.
We had scheduled six Miracle Services once a month beginning from June
24th 2015. Together with many others, we fasted and prayed for seven days
while some fasted for three days. On the prayer night before the first
Miracle Service, as I prayed I saw a vision of Melissa being totally healed
and running around the auditorium; and the Holy Spirit told me to make
sure I gave her a word of encouragement before I left the prayer meeting
that night. I did exactly that and knew that the vision would be fulfilled.

The First Miracle and Other Miracles

The first Miracle Service felt like electricity in the air. All the archangels
that form the canopy of glory: Michael, Gabriel, Raphael and Phanuel were
there and so were the three Spirit Beings who worked with our Lord Jesus
Christ on earth. I knew that this was special for archangel Phanuel was
supposed to join with me much later in the fullness of glory around 2020 to
2022 before the five years of super growth for the church (2022-2026).
After preaching the message, I knew that I needed to call Melissa forward
and after she was touched by God’s power, she got up and before I could
tell her to run, she herself ran around the auditorium and you could feel the
electricity of God’s power flowing through the whole room that night.
Melissa’s husband, TL, told me that for Melissa to run, it would be like
running with fractured legs! So it was a definite miracle that God had
worked in Melissa’s physical body. It was her destiny to be the beginning of
miracles in this move of God.

Through the years 2015 and 2016, we had many miracles and the
testimonies are available on the website. We tried to get those who had
doctor’s certification of both the ailments and the healing. There were those
who had the certification while others did not have but their healings and
miracles were remarkable enough to share with those who needed their faith
encouraged to receive miracles themselves. Several cancers were healed,
and many remarkable miracles took place. During the miracle services in
2015, many of those who came were eagerly looking forward to the three
miracles prophesied: growing of new leg, heart pacer removed and replaced
by a real heart, and a blind man fully healed. By October 2015, we needed
an answer as to why the three miracles had not taken place yet and I had
many discussions with Arion about that. I was concern that the prophecy
had not come to pass as we had only two miracle services scheduled for that

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 123


year. I had even met a person who had the heart pacer and looked very
much like the person to receive that miracle.

Subsequently, Arion had the download that he was supposed to stay back
in Pergamos during the September 2015 trip to Pergamos while the rest of
the group headed to Ephesus but he did not. In fact before the trip, I had
actually emailed to him saying that based on his own download, the date
when he was supposed to meet with the Lord Jesus was the date when we
were scheduled to go to Ephesus. I also asked him if he should pray about
whether he should stay back in Pergamos because there was a date given in
his own download of an event between him and the Lord on that exact day.
His reply was he thought it was OK for him to join everyone for the trip to
Ephesus. Subsequently, when the three miracles did not take place by the
October 2015 miracle service, he had a download that he was supposed to
have stayed back in Pergamos on that given date to meet with the Lord.
Because of that disobedience, he did not receive the anointing and
transfiguration on that date, and it was tied to the three prophesied miracles
not happening.

Failure of Three Miracles to Manifest

In the downloads, the Lord Jesus explained about His glory and presence
and that it was necessary for that fullness of glory and presence to be
present to have the three miracles and somehow that level was not received
during the September trip because the exact date specified to be in
Pergamos was not performed. There were three things that are of concern to
me, not about the download which I believe to be true but about the reasons
for the three prophesied miracles not happening:
1. The reason Arion did not stay back on that exact date while the
group went on, which he told me personally, was financial.
2. In his downloads on a supposed meeting with the Lord on that
specific date, it had not included me, but it seemed to imply that I
was also supposed to be there but I had no instruction on this, and if
such instruction were to be given to me by Arion, it was not
delivered or not received and delivered.
3. It was the first time that I heard that the three miracles were tied to
Arion meeting up with the Lord in September 2015. The first time I
received the prophecy on the three miracles, it was a gift because of
my obedience in being willing to go to USA in February 2016 to
start the church there. It was not tied to anyone’s obedience or
disobedience. It was specifically a gift given by the Lord to me for
being willing to start a church in USA earlier than I had originally
planned.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 124


After this download, I began to have concerns of missing portions of
prophecy that was not delivered and also the additional of new conditions to
original blessings given. Being very logically minded, I had to get to the
bottom of this and I analysed through all the downloads to see if there was
anything missing and found that there were consistent times when there
were interruptions to the downloads of Arion. I even listed them down for
him in discussions and was very concerned about partial prophecy and also
missing bits which might be vital to the whole prophecy. I would have liked
to know that the three miracles, as described and given in the previous
chapter of this book, was tied also to the Transfiguration and not just to my
obedience in being willing to go to USA to start a church. By November and
December miracle services, I was no longer expecting the three miracles
and instead, I was very concern not just about the downloads of Arion and
prophecies but about what was missing. I still believe that everything was
from the Lord Jesus and the Holy Spirit but was beginning to be wary about
the missing parts of the downloads. Overall, I still believe in the downloads
of both the first seven thunders prophet and the second seven thunders
prophet, except that both receive only one section of the prophecies (like
one page) and need the other page to be filled by me. So at any time when
they interpret the part as the whole, then the mistakes of interpretation and
application would start occurring.

By the year 2016, in which we had three miracle services planned for
March, April and May and a week of miracles in October, I was no longer
primed for the three miracles. I also found that people were coming just
hoping to see the three miracles rather than enjoying the Lord’s awesome
presence manifest and just loving Him for His goodness and love towards
us, thus resulting in miracles. Flowing with the word of the Lord that we do
need Transfiguration before the greater miracles, I planned to go secretly to
Pergamos to a time with the Lord and receive the Transfiguration. I opened
it to the second generation four (of the living creatures) if they wanted to
follow. They all agreed to go and everyone received a manifestation of the
Transfiguration on January 12th and 13th 2016 when we were there. There
was an unusual strong wind and the cable car could not be used, hence we
had to walk up on January 13th. We had all night on January 12th, took a
short nap, then walked up and spent the whole day up on Pergamos. We
agreed not to talk about it until the fullness of time as was also the
experience of Jesus and His three disciples on the Mount of Transfiguration
(Matthew 17:9).

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 125


Crisis in the Home

In 1997, after I had left Malaysia to go to Australia, I had an encounter


with the angel who had always been present with me in ministry times. I
was shown that I would be involved in the end-times. In this vision-dream,
it was exactly one week before Jesus was to return. I seemed to be some sort
of commander in chief and I was instructing everyone what to do. I sent out
teams, some consisting of two or three, some with more people all over the
world. When the teams left the place where I had just given instruction,
some of them took conventional means of transport to go to various
assigned places while others were transported supernaturally. Today, I know
that the last week represents this seven times seven years and with me being
involved in leading the move was always my predestination and destiny.
One part of the dream-vision that I did not share was that in that vision there
was a lady standing next to me, who in the vision seemed to function like
my wife but in the dream-vision it was not my present wife. I kept this to
myself and have always assumed it means I will live longer than her and at
some time in the future I would have re-married after my wife had gone
home to be with the Lord. In the dream-vision, the face of this mysterious
lady was blurred out and I could not recognize or see who it was.

From 1997 to 2007, we have had our ups and downs. For my part, I did
my best to rebuild our marriage and was managing reasonably well despite
some quarrels and arguments. When I decided to go back to ministry,
everything seemed to take a turn for the worst and more arguments erupted
over very petty things. I traced it to the root of bitterness that still needed to
be dealt with, as it could poison everything (Acts 8:23; Ephesians 4:31;
Hebrews 12:15). I did my best to create harmony and happiness, such as
planning many trips and holidays whenever I could but whatever I did was
never enough and the slightest misunderstanding became a full-fledged
argument. After my children had grown up and left the house, these quarrels
became more frequent, and most of the time, I was accused of not doing
enough or caring enough, while based on the law of average comparatively
to many couples I would have gone beyond and above what others did in
caring. An example was that no matter how much care I gave, if I ever
showed the minutest care or concern to anyone else, especially if it was a
lady, there would be a total misinterpretation of it and another quarrel
resulted. Yet in all these, I never took the road to divorce because I have
always felt that God hates divorce and it would harm the ministry. So it
would be better to keep a loveless marriage for the sake of the ministry than
to divorce. When I started travelling to Singapore, the home front became so
bad that I did not look forward to going home anymore. Many were the
lonely tears I cried and the nights I wept before God. I could tell no one for
no one would believe me as outwardly everything seemed well. When the

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 126


“chaperon” issue came about in December 2008, I was deeply hurt as I felt
the sacred trust in our marriage was no longer there. As a result, the matter
of divorce was mentioned and for the first time, I was determined that I
could not live like that anymore for I had no strength left to fight the
spiritual battles for the church and ministry outside and then return to a
home where I had to fight for some quiet and peace.

Struggles: Balancing a broken marriage and obeying God’s visions

Our marriage started well in 1981 and we were very focused on the
ministry and fulfilling our individual calling. We have shared many good
years together and she had been a good mother to our children. When our
marriage crumbled in 1996, we tried to rebuild our marriage away from
everyone. We both did our best to restore our love for one another and
develop a fresh start. We both sacrificed much to try to rebuild our lives and
our family. The occasional quarrels and misunderstandings were there but
we managed to be at peace until I became active in the ministry again in the
years 2008-2009. Somehow, without any purposeful planning for such
things, quarrels became more often and I tried to show more love by
planning more yearly holidays with family and spending more time to
improve the relationship but it did not seem to work, as some of those
special trips ended up in quarrels, too.

By the time the Singapore church started, there was a struggle between
trying to assure Amy of my love for her while still being faithful in my love
for the Lord in serving Him in ministry. At times it felt like I had to choose
between the two although such should not be so. Although not openly
expressed, it was like she did not want me to be in ministry at all and for
me, I knew that if I live my life without fulfilling God’s call, I would be the
unhappiest person on earth. I struggled on until we came to a point when we
agreed to have a trial separation. It was during this first trial separation that I
allowed a close relationship to develop, which in hindsight, would have
been better if I had broken off cleanly first before starting a new
relationship. I must admit that while my conscience was clear before God
that I did not cross any line, I should have considered the potential fallouts
as a result of misunderstanding. At that point of time, I was also struggling
to understand how everything was going to work out according to the
visions God has shown. Also, no one knew at that time my marriage was in
dire straits. Unfortunately, that situation was blown out of proportion and
many inaccurate testimonies were made against me. I kept my peace and
agreed with the local pastors to give our marriage another go in 2010. My
personal struggle was balancing a broken marriage with ministry
expectations and the impact my divorce would have on the ministry. From
2010 to 2012, when this end time move started, I continued to struggle

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 127


balancing a broken marriage with the added responsibilities of the end time
move. Amy did her best and we maintained the harmony and tried to
prevent our marriage issues from impeding or distracting us from the
important end time works.

By 2013-2014, when the end time visions of others began to show forth a
potential soulmate other than Amy, it deepened the internal struggles. I was
on one hand trying my best to love Amy and rebuild the marriage while on
the other, God kept showing visions of the soulmate and future partner. It
felt so artificial and hypocritical trying to hold on to these two things, and
they cannot exist at the same time. Even relegating the events to past,
present and future did not help because of the consciousness of the existence
of two realities in the mind which cannot be mediated.

Looking back, with all that have happened, I felt I should have proceeded
with the divorce back in 2010. I should have made a clean break and be true
to myself with regard to my marriage before moving on further. On the
other hand, if I had taken the divorce route, I would have also gone against
the advice some local pastors were giving me at that time. The struggle was
real, genuine and heartbreaking in 2010. In fact, during a leaders’ meeting in
May 2016, one of the leaders who was familiar with the background,
reminded me that he told me in 2010, that I should have gone ahead with the
divorce. In that same meeting, I admitted publicly that I should have taken
his advice.

I learned a lesson in 2014 that I needed to confide in some leaders about


my marriage struggles and the soulmate visions God was showing, and to
seek their counsel on the best plan forward. While attempting to obey God’s
vision, I had made contact (via email) with a soulmate as revealed in one of
various visions. This has now been used against me, as those emails are
taken out of context to paint me in a very negative light. Hence in January
2016, when I decided to move forward with the visions given, I had the
backing of three second generation leaders and their counsel. But that too
resulted in misunderstandings and more materials were taken out of context
to attack me and the ministry.

In all these, the one mistake stands out - it was important to make a clean
break so that confusion and misunderstanding will not result. After the
various upheavals within the church from 2009 to now, with increasing
attack on my character integrity, my love for God, family and ministry and
the end time works, which are all link to my failing marriage and my
obedience to God’s given visions, I decided to take the next step and deal
with the root cause, a decision that I had held off for many years – I
finalized my divorce from Amy.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 128


Breaking away was not easy, especially when there is still genuine care
and concern for one’s ex-wife. No matter how much wrong was done or
how many quarrels endured, I still genuinely care for Amy and wanted only
God’s best for her. In no way do I want to reject her and deny her of her
divine destiny, calling and rewards. Though we might have been
unsuccessful in rebuilding our marriage, she had been a good wife and
mother of my children for many years. She had been as sacrificial as I was
in giving our all to the family. For that I will always be eternally grateful. I
can understand a bit more clearly given all the circumstances and all the
ways things have developed. Though our marriage might end, genuine
agape love need not end, and it is better to wish her well with a pursuit of
her calling and destiny than to wish for her quick departure from the earth,
in hopes of pursuing the second reality of future partner in the ministry. I
recognise now that sometimes a marriage does reach an impassable state
where two people just cannot find peace with one another, but it does not
mean that kindness, agape love, and caring should end, especially where
there is still love for the Lord.

Trying to Live Peaceably, Avoiding the Road to Divorce

Finally, I realized that even when God said that He hates divorce (Malachi
2:16) there were grounds for divorce in adultery (Matthew 19:9). In
adjudicating the relationship between believers and unbelievers, the apostle
Paul emphasized that if one cannot live in peace (1 Corinthians 7:15 God
has called us to peace) then one is not under bondage when the unbelieving
one departs. Of course, Paul expects that every believer would want to live
in peace. From verse 11 of chapter seven to verse 16, divorce is mentioned
three times so we know that the context of “depart” means divorce in
contextual criticism of the text. Although the Corinthian context involved
believers and unbelievers, in principle it applies to all relationships, that
both parties must be willing to live in peace. For where ‘wars’ and
disharmonies are present in a relationship, both the spouses and their
children will suffer and be irreparably damaged.

This does not give everyone whose marriage has failed permission to
divorce. For to me, it is better to save the marriage and try to restore it as
this is the best and more perfect solution. However, in order for any
marriage to work, even for those whose marriages have not failed yet, it is
important to have the environment that their spouse will not –
1. Constantly speak ill of them, either in front or behind their back
2. Be constantly suspicious of them and think the worst of them

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 129


3. Run them down unceasingly
4. Find friends or confidante who will agree with them that their
spouses have a list of weaknesses and will always have them
permanently, and will never change.
5. Outwardly proclaim love and affection but behind the scene, work at
destroying their reputation through words and backbiting.
If any of these things are done constantly, even a good marriage will break
down, so how much more one that is already broken and in need of repair?
It is obvious that all the above points showed that the root of bitterness is at
work and needs to be uprooted.

Lest anyone think ill of Amy, I believe always that she is a good and
wonderful person but the pain of my failure in 1996, had never been fully
healed. She has been a wonderful mother and a wonderful wife and have
done her best through the years. Everyone reading this will know that in
every relationship, no matter what is shared from one party that is one sided,
that there is always the other side of the picture. It takes two hands to clap, it
takes two persons to harmonize and it takes two persons to quarrel. Though
the world hears via mass email and backbiting all the worst stories of me, I
will not talk bad or evil about Amy except for the summarized accounts
here, to show that there is sincere effort to try to make the marriage work.
Sadly, we have come to the stage where the differences are so great and the
root of bitterness is as described above, such that two persons cannot live
peaceably. Even my silence to avoid quarrels became an issue. I will always
only have fond memories and love her, though our paths are no longer
together. Perhaps if I never failed in 1996, there would have been no
opportunity for the root of bitterness to come into her heart. For that, I take
responsibility and apologize for my failures. I am sorry that my life has not
been as perfect as the life of Jesus, for those who desire a vessel of God to
be unblemished and pure. I was not born in glory but like all mankind born
in sin and that is why my life is the road to glory.

Please do not find this part of the story of my life as an excuse for those
reading to go into divorce when you have a marriage problem. My advice is
always to be true to your loved one and never, never ever commit adultery.
We have a Christian base and are not like unbelievers who can sleep around
like it is nothing. One such act might cause irreparable damage to your
marriage. Sadly, for me, my past moral failure resulted in the root of
bitterness growing, destroying all possibility of reconciliation. Perhaps I
might have succeeded if I never came back to ministry for everything
seemed to take a turn for the worse when the choice was made to fulfil
God’s calling. Every imperfect situation has thousands of ‘what ifs’. Many
reading this story might think that I have not done enough or endured
enough or loved enough or tried hard enough, etc. For that, I can only say

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 130


only God knows how much I genuinely tried. I apologise that I am not the
best perfect story that most people like, especially with a divine calling to be
the Voice that cries at midnight.

The Beginning of Visions Seen by Others of the Future

At the back of my mind through all these personal sufferings, there were
two occasions when I thought that someone whom God brought across my
path was the person I saw in 1997. My involvements with these women
never cross the line into physical copulation for I was determined to never
cross that line. However, in relating to these, my characteristics as a person
always come out when I am close with anyone I trust, that is I always share
anything and everything in terms of the use of words in communication.
That is my nature, I am detailed, passionate, completely open and
transparent of all my thoughts and feelings and it comes out with everyone
without any exceptions and not just in personal relationships but in church
relations and spiritual relationships. What I say, share or communicate is
always intellectual, analytical, passionate, detailed and expressive with
words whether it be a scientific matter, biblical matter, emotional matter,
love matter, etc. It flows from the nature of being transparent in
communication one on one.

The year 2015 began eventfully with the fulfilment of the three-point
prayer as instructed by Archangel Uriel. It was to be a remarkable year as
the antichrist would be born and his power to be limited. It also heralds the
process of the 144,000 being born on the planet earth in batches. They were
to be special individuals who have the power to be virgins throughout their
lives during the Tribulation (Revelations 14:4). The ability to be a virgin at
their level involved being virgins in spirit, soul and body greater than
normal spiritual eunuchs of the kingdom of God (Matthew 19:12). They will
have their special song to sing in heaven that no one can sing but them
(Revelations 14:3). I had met with the 144,000 many times in heaven and
were training them in my heavenly mansion. Jehudah saw visions of this
many times:

Jehudah’s visions (note: in 2015 visions of the 144,000 started to be given)


25th August 2015
…then saw children running towards me that were so happy. They are the
144,000 and said that they are watching us from heaven. Then as I looked
around, I saw each of the 12 leaders with a group of children from the
144,000 and training them in heaven and also enjoying time with them. I
asked Ps Johann in heaven and he said that we are like spiritual parents of
the 144,000.
1st September 2015

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 131


Saw Ps Johann wearing royal garments and sparkling with the twelve and
144,000 behind him.

I was shown that I was involved together with my soulmate in energizing


them by absorbing their sexual energies, so that it is no more present in
them. I asked the Lord to confirm this to others without me breathing a word
about this and the Lord showed to Janet and Arion in 2015 and 2016 many
visions of me and my soulmate in a state of spiritual marriage and intimacy
(though they do not fully know what it means). Extract of visions, there
were altogether about 40-50 visions or more but we select a few shown
below:

Janet’s visions:
18th October 2015
Pastor holding some flowers walking together with the two kids. Saw
Pastor’s eyes also little tears and wet. After Pastor and kids walked for a
while, saw not too far from them new bride also holding some flowers
walking towards pastor’s direction. Then all walked together like going to
some place. Next saw pastor with new family came to a place and put the
flower down in a specific area. Vision shown this specific area form in a
rectangular shape. Then on it there’s some Chinese words and also a photo
was printed on it also. Can’t see clearly what’s the Chinese word mean and
the photo look like a female but the face not clear. Pastor and new family
stood there for a moment remain silent then they left the place and heard the
kids say, ‘Bye.” Pastor and new family walking along the beach. After
walking for a while saw them like being pulled by a force and then
disappeared (transported or translated), then from behind saw some
translucent figure following (angel). Saw pastor and new family standing
around a well. The well was built by stone. They were all looking into the
well. Vision show there’s a rope attached to the well and flow down into the
well. Pastor then pulled the rope up slowly, then gradually saw there’s
people being pulled up, men, women, children, their clothings were torn and
dirty. Then towards the end saw also wheelchair, stretcher and walking
stick also pulled up from the well. (Speaks of energizing and miracles from
the heavenly realm).
1st April 2016
Saw pastor’s mansion in the heaven, it is like a king’s palace. Pastor was in
his bedroom sitting on the bed, saw Bride sitting next to him, then saw
pastor holding Bride’s hand and give her a kiss on her cheek. Then saw
both of them walked towards the door and pastor pushed open the door.
As the door was opened, saw a group of people was waiting outside. Pastor
holding Bride’s hand stood in front of the people. Then heard the voice,
“She’s my Bride.” Vision shows Bride wearing a veil on her head like a
heavenly bride. Saw both of them move out from the room and the people

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 132


followed behind. As pastor and Bride entered into another room, saw there
are many beautiful chairs and tables being arranged, impression like it is a
wedding banquet.
3rd April 2016
Pastor and Bride standing facing each other, then pastor began to hold
Bride’s hand (both hands), then pastor telling Bride, “You need to grow,
and grow fast.” Bride look at pastor with a bit of teary eyes and said,
“Teach me!”

17th April 2016


Pastor doing some teaching to a group of people. Saw him writing on a
white board. At the same time, saw Bride also standing next to the
whiteboard…it’s like pastor and Bride minister together to the group of
people.
Saw like a bedroom setting with daylight shine into the room, Bride lying on
the bed, looks like she is resting…saw pastor sitting at the side of the bed
and lean his head and kiss Bride on the forehead…

Arion’s visions:
28th Dec 2015 to 9th January 2016 - Ps Johann/Bride – The Father and Son
I was taken multiple times to the NHNE, I saw this vision many times now,
in reports and then things are added. This is the final with the additions.
I saw you Ps Johann standing in new heaves and new earth and I saw you
and the Bride came besides you. You then held hands and then merged into
each other and turned into a new being; at least that is what it looked like.
The vision shifted and I saw you pastor-bride in the blue/red form from
creation I saw the last time. Then you shifted from the blue/red form to a
merged form together, the form now had human face features of Ps Johann
then this merged form separated back into Ps Johann and Bride. I saw Ps
Johann then take his Bride around NHNE talking to her and fellowshipping;
it seemed you were helping her to remember. End

Then, I saw this happen many times, Then I saw the Father and Son Jesus
with the Holy Spirit standing in the NHNE and Ps Johann you and the Bride
came up and merged then I saw the Father and Son merge and then go into
you and merge into one being. Then you separated out again, into two
beings the Father/Son and Johann/Bride then again into 4. Then I saw all 5
of you the 5th is the Holy Spirit going around the NHNE talking. I didn’t
hear what was said.

14th January 2016 - 3 altars – Pristine Angels


On the first altar, and 2nd altar, I saw the 4 living creatures and 4 arch
Angels and as we finished and prayed for them. I saw these angels and

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 133


portals open. In fact, I seen a portal over Berlin open and all the altars we
visited.
Then on the 3rd altar, we built in the river bed. I saw another portal open
and then I saw all these worship angels come from the pristine Universe.
And there was a massive release on the earth of the New Jerusalem Glory
like never before. I see light hit you Ps Johann and his Bride and there was
a blast and release of this and all these Legions of worship Angels from the
pristine Universe came down. I see a group go to each one of us. I see the 3
of us each get 3 new worship Angels from the pristine section.

Both Tussayuniel (name of Worship Archangel given by Ps Johann) merged


with you and your Bride it seems. I then remember I saw the Bride playing
the piano and then Tussayuniel play like they were merged and then I see
them playing like you Ps Johann, and the Bride is playing and it flashes
back in forth from Tussayuniel and the Bride as they are one in the same.
I then see Jehudah begins to talk with the three, I see mine now and I see
that I in the spirit are talking with them and the same with Abraham. These
three angels put some energizing in us and merge with us. I see we also
have great amplification at this time. I then see this figure /Spirit next to me
helping me build my personal altar in the Spirit. I then see she is like a
female spirit and has blue eyes and like blonde hair but it’s hard to tell
blonde or dark black. But I just see the eyes have lots of love and are blue. I
then see that I have so many Angels working with me it’s like a massive
group at my personal altar. And we all have these hosts with us it’s a lot. I
now see the 3rd form uncreated Trinity, Word, Father, Holy spirit and Jesus
with the Bride positioned to the corresponding 1st + 2nd (Ps Johann/Bride)
created reflection at each personal alter that is built.

12th-13th February 2016


Next Vision- Snowy Mountain
I then was taken to Snowy Mountain, I saw the Altar built there and then I
saw the whole of Australia I saw this massive big building in the centre of it.
It was such a big stadium style place that I could see it from space because
it was so big it looked like it could hold millions in it. And then I saw all
kinds of places around the whole country with meeting places. I saw light
coming out of them and knew believers of the glorious church were
worshiping. I then was told three months before the Rapture Ps Johann and
his Bride will come back down and hold services to help prepare the Bride
for the coming of Jesus to get them in the air. I then saw you come and start
to preach Ps Johann and his Bride worshipping. It was amazing, you would
come down and preach in this massive stadium. Then you would go up and
disappear and we would worship and also the 4 and 12, and the 500 at that
time had different parts to preach but it wasn’t as much preaching as much

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 134


as worshipping. It was like 3 months of mostly of worship. I then saw we
worshipped and worshipped.

18th-19th February 2016 - Millennium


Then I see now that I am helping manage all these things with Uryaluzzael
in the Spirit and then one day I will full take that place so he may go to his
next assignment. I see Ps Johann’s Bride, she enjoys seeing the new
animals come in that had not been released before. I see you Ps Johann and
said to me, “You would be wise to ask my Bride what to name them.” I then
see without question I ask and I see Jehudah and Abraham next to me. As it
looks like we all share in bringing these new ones forth. I see Jehudah
works with me to connect the spiritual aspect to the physical, he on the
physical side and I on the spiritual side connecting the animals till they are
one and then I see the life of God go through me from the Bride and Ps
Johann from Jesus to the animals connecting them to become living and into
the earth and physical. I then see Abraham making sure the process is
complete perfectly to specified design as the Lord wants as we are bringing
them from the bosom where they were stored in me in the spirit to the
physical. I then see the Bride give a perfect name for them. (Note by Ps
Johann: it is only when my Bride names them - I am in her also naming
them, so when she does it, it is also me – that the animals receive another
layer of life and becomes male & female). The Bride names the animals as
the three work together in this. I see we go about till all these are
completed. I see our solar system is linked to this earth. I see as we are also
used to renew the earth and restore it in the millennium that also the other
plants that are dead are to be restored. I see a lot of the 1st generation
going to these places and it seems that somehow we transport to those
planets like I see Mars and it’s no longer red its green and blue. But the
blue isn’t because its covered by water it seems the atmosphere is very blue
almost purple and it has so many green plants.

I asked the Lord for more understanding and the Lord said to wait until
His timing. It seems that the choice of our soulmate goes through various
configurations as the right person enters into a place of spiritual positioning
in God. So soulmate is not just physical and soul compatibility but spiritual
positioning in God. In the year 2014-2015, praying in line with God’s
revelation of soulmate, I flowed with the visions of Janet in praying for a
person which the vision showed we had two kids and living in a house. One
of the things that bothered me at first was the Scriptures on lusting in the
heart (Matthew 5:28). The following points were made clear to me by the
Lord Jesus:

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 135


1. I had already been living with my legal wife as brother and sister
for some years then and in 2014, I had to make known to her
about the vision of the end times that I saw in 1997, and that I
will re-marry and have two children for the Millennium. I
obeyed and informed her but did mention that it only takes place
after she finishes her work on earth and goes home. I also told
some of my leaders in obedience to the Lord, although many do
not understand why I suddenly mentioned that as I did not
explain the reasons but just said that I have to tell them as the
Lord instructed so that they bear witness that I have told them.
The Lord made it clear that I had to communicate this prophecy
to my wife and to the leaders, which I did after one of the
leadership meetings and in Sydney only with one second
generation person. I do not think anybody understood why I did
it but I knew that the Lord said I must do it. It seemed that
releasing the word of prophecy quickened some things with the
angels in the spiritual realm.
2. The Lord Jesus said that I no longer belong to myself but belong
to Him and everything that happens to me and everything that I
do is now a calendar and a prophetic act. This does not apply to
others but only to me as an exceptional case, similar to the
exceptional cases in the Bible like:
a. Hosea being told to marry a prostitute (representing
Israel) and produce three prophetically named sons as
part of his prophecy (Hosea 1:2-9; 3:1).
b. Isaiah was told to walk naked for three years as a
prophetic act (Isaiah 20:3).
c. Ezekiel had to lie on his left side for 390 days and his
right side for 40 days and use dung as fuel to cook his
food (Ezekiel 4:4-15).
d. David was allowed to eat the showbread which was
meant only for priests (1 Samuel 21:6).
e. Jesus broke the Sabbath law because He is the Lord of
the Sabbath (Matthew 12:3-8).
f. Jesus told me that based on Scriptures all men must die,
even Enoch and Elijah in the Tribulation, and He had
already made an exception for me as I will be translated
on 19 September 2060, so by His authority (not my own
authority but by Christ’s authority) I had been given an
exception for a special reason (Hebrews 9:27; Revelation
11:7-10).
3. Jesus said that when I find my soulmate and started merging with
her in the spirit and soul, I will understand fully one of the great
mysteries of creation (in reference to Ephesians 5:31-32). He

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 136


emphatically told me that I must not cross the line physically as
it would be lawful sin but that spiritual laws govern the spirit and
soul while the laws of Moses govern the physical body until it is
redeemed spiritually, too. Thus consecration and holiness are
important to the Lord even when He gave permission of merging
in spirit and soul. He said that more will be revealed later and to
consecrate myself.

Throughout the year 2015, I met the 144,000 many times and energized
them as they came in batches (it was like Matthew 8:17 where Jesus healed
before His atonement on the cross, and I felt the Holy Spirit energising the
144,000 through my being, which seemed merged with my soulmate. It was
all part of the end time work to also prepare the way for the 144,000 and the
Lord revealed their cycles of twelve and the rabbi who will lead them and
train them, besides the appearance of Enoch and Elijah to the rabbi when he
turn twenty-four in the year 2025.

Events leading to Sydney Rebellion

In September 2015, we had the appointment of the four plus four in the
second generation and also the re-alignment of the twelve and the
introduction of the four in the first generation. It seemed that the energising
of the four living creatures must be complete in the glorious church in order
to protect from the onslaught of the antichrist and fallen angels. In
November 2015, the antichrist was born and a great evil has come upon the
world and yet the mainline church does not know it. Indeed, the Bible
prophesies that first will come the apostasy and then the man of sin (the
antichrist) (2 Thessalonians 2:3-4).

In December 2015, I was asked by one of the second generation in the


face of the man, what it meant to be that and what was involved. I replied
off hand that the most important thing is wisdom and to grow until she
becomes the personification of wisdom. Immediately after that the Lord
spoke and said that the personification of wisdom will become your Bride as
Wisdom and I are one, and Wisdom and I had been one before and my
predestination existence before I came to earth was being one with wisdom.
I quickly wrote back to stop her from becoming the personification of
wisdom as I did not think that she could be my potential soulmate nor was I
interested in her at all, as I already had another person in my prayer list
based on visions. I told her she better pray about this and fast and I also told
her about this girl that I was already praying about, and she also said that
she had someone she liked. I wrote that I had completely no interest in her
and was horrified to think that she could even be a candidate to be soulmate.
So we both fasted for forty days, and in the meantime, I had already made

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 137


plans to go to Pergamos in January 2016 to receive the Transfiguration
anointing, which Arion, Abraham and Jehudah were all going to be a part
of.

In the midst of the forty-day fast, I received downloads of the pre-


existence and that she indeed was my potential soulmate. I wrote to her that
I had downloads but did not mention what they were, and said that to make
it easier, she can say “No” to me, and that it is easier for me to take the
“No” rather than her receive a “No” from me, as I do not want to be the one
to hurt her feelings. Finally after her forty-day fast, she replied that in the
natural just like myself, she would have said “No” but she left the decision
to me. I immediately wanted to say No to her as there were too many natural
barriers to overcome. Just as I was about to reply with a “No”, the Lord
reminded me that she did not say “No” but had left the decision to me. That
was tough as if I had said “No” and it was God’s Will, I would be the one
bearing more responsibility and judgment. So we finally agreed to give it a
go. Immediately, I gave her forty pages of mediation to write and prepare
for the Transfiguration.

When Jehudah, Abraham, she and I met Arion at the airport in Istanbul,
Arion immediately shared the download he had on her being my soulmate
from pre-existence. Thereafter throughout the trip, there was great unity. On
the way to Istanbul, in Singapore, the Lord showed in a download that I had
to do several things before the trip which we did:
1. Get her a pair of boots, two coats representing the personification
of wisdom and the bride, ceremonially wash her feet and put the
boot and coat on her as a prophetic act.
2. Shared a communion together making a soulmate covenant like
Jonathan and David, and kneel down and pray and dedicated
ourselves to the Lord in holiness to be future Bridegroom and
Bride in the Lord’s timing.
3. To give her gifts and a light kiss (lasting only a split second) as a
seal of the covenant.
4. It was agreed that though we will walk in holiness and never
ever cross the physical lines of sin, we can share anything and
everything without fear of rejection.

On arrival at Pergamos, we all quickly went up to pray and when we came


down, we had some fellowship over lentil soup as we were all on a fast.
That night we had overnight prayer and there was so much energizing. After
a short nap, we all headed up to Pergamos hill. The wind was unusually
strong and the cable car was closed, so we all had to walk up the hill. Elijah

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 138


led us up, together with Moses, and each of us experienced the
Transfiguration in our own way. Some of the visions were as follows:

Jehudah’s Visions:
11th January 2016 (1st day at Pergamos)
Transfiguration /NHNE
In the plane I saw many angels standing guard. I was given many
daggers/small swords. Went to transfiguration and saw was an appointment
ceremony.
Went to NHNE and God the Father was there at a pond/lake and asked
“What do you see?” I saw a calm still water that was never changing and
went in the pond/lake a few times receiving peace as state of mind. Father
said to come to the pond for impartation. Tiael the worship angel was there
and move hands in a melody. I saw Jehudah and he had the same mind the
same one frequency of the peace in the Pond. Saw Ishani in heaven who
gave a flower. God the Father said to hear birds and I heard melodies and
layers of worship at the same time. Saw the 4 and Pastor Johann was there
and we were fellowshipping and enjoying and I saw my dog Toby there.
Was reminded to meditate on peace scriptures.

At Pergamos
Saw a large white sword from the sky going deep into the earth.
Saw my clothes being taken off/being stripped then saw a white crystal come
out of ground (new millennium)
Was standing and the 4 living creatures circling around me looking at me
with their eyes that were bright like golden light and energy was released.

Archangel Uriel was standing and gave sword with many colours. I rubbed
the sword over my body, then saw the same colours on the sword over my
body. After that the sword was put into the earth.
A sword went into my body from top down and straight into my body and
another time saw a sword moving in my body like an operation was being
performed.
The Lord Jesus came and anointed us with olive oil all over our bodies. Saw
my body glittering; seeing sparkles on body (assimilation)
Saw a white innocent Lamb with Golden eyes looking for someone (later
Pastor explained was looking for the Bride on my left during prayer to
receive the New Jerusalem glory)
Saw a scroll written in tongues and started reading it out as a song; was
singing from scroll. Saw my being turn to dust and then a crystal came out
from the ground (new millennium)

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 139


All Night Prayer (ANP)
Moses came with a staff and said to sing in the spirit.
Saw the Lord a few times watching us during the prayer.
I saw a being that was fully golden with a scroll of worship that was three
layers into one scroll representing worship now in these times, the 2nd for
the millennium and the third worship for NHNE. It was the angel
Tussayuniel.
I saw a ball of light, a transparent bubble and lifted it up and then went
inside of it and lifted it up and put bubble on rest of the four and later we
were all inside the white bubble of light. There were sparkling crystals on
the outside of the ball of light.
Archangel Uriel came and said we need to pray more to build up to pray
through and looked excited in anticipation.
Later during one of the ending prayers during ANP, saw that the ball grew
from inside of us and came out of our beings.
During ending prayer gold came out of three.
Saw arrows being shot in the air from Pergamos to Germany and then later
to the whole world. Saw a vision of the all the dogs being killed
During prayer saw a green light.
Before sleeping, was given a golden key by the Lord and then saw that the
same golden get was given to the rest of the 4.
Was walking in a forest with thick branches and led to a bonfire where I
was given marshmallows and together with the 4 and Pastor Johann we
prayed and the fire got bigger and bigger that covered the whole earth.

12th January 2016 (Transfiguration day)


Saw the white Lamb again who spoke and saw the word “Glory” in gold in
the air. Later I saw the Lamb go on top of the altar and merged with altar
(It represented the Bride as Pastor explained)

The Lord Jesus stood in front of me with a sceptre with a crystal flower on
top of it and sparkling, then touched my forehead and the same sparkling
energy from the crystal came over my whole body.
Uriel said to worship and I saw many angels over the mountains and
worshiping together with the Lord.
Saw the Lord Jesus come into my body and out of my body a few times and
stood in front of me face to face and there was a mirroring effect like of
Jesus looking at me and He was in me as well. I saw the DNA of Jesus in my
body as golden sparkling dots all over the body. (the impression was that as
Jesus was moving in and out of my body the sin nature was removed).
I was looking at Pastor Johann and saw Jesus going into and out of his
body with Jesus fully in Him and then Jesus came out and was talking to
Pastor while Jesus was inside his being as well and looked exactly the same.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 140


During the day while praying, was reminded in my spirit strongly as a
witness in my spirit that the sin nature has been removed and that the
transfiguration was done.
During the prayer around the altar as we held hands together, I saw Jesus
in the centre of us and laid His hands on us and placing crowns on our
heads. At the start of the prayer I felt and saw a wind rushing into and
through our bodies; our DNAs are being changed / transformed. I saw a
white light that was in the centre of our beings that started to grow from the
inside out through our bodies and outside our bodies and felt very hot/heat
in my body. I also saw Pastor Johann with a sceptre in his hand.
Saw imprints on my hands and my feet as per Jesus of the nails that were
put on Jesus’ hands and feet when He was crucified on the cross. (Pastor
later explained that was representing the fellowship of His sufferings)
At the end of the prayer saw Moses and Elijah at top of altar and were
happy and smiling at us
Three new angels from Pristine Galaxy came and their names were
Hattatael, Kattatael and Rattatael and they came for the worship.

Arion’s visions:
10th January 2016
Vision - Taken to Pergamos before we went
In the Spirit, we four went with Ps Johann and then the Glory Cloud came
over us on the mountain as we prayed (like we were praying the time
before) next to the first altar. I saw all of us in the spirit and we were on
fire.
Vision - Scarlet woman/false prophet/ Satan and destruction of Dogs and
wolves
Then as I was in the Spirit on the mountain/Pergamos, I saw from a far the
scarlet woman and she went to meet up with the false prophet who was a
crazy looking man with long beard and tall hair: like a lion-looking man in
the spirit. He also had goat horns on his head and wore an old time looking
John the Baptist guise with a staff; but he was the false prophet. As I saw
the meeting, I noticed they were in Tel Aviv; and had crossed over into our
part where they were not allowed and out of their allotted territory. Then
the false prophet saw me seeing them talking in this place from afar and
they both turned to look at me.
The false prophet got mad and said why are you ruining our plans and he
charged at me in the spirit and thrust his staff/rod toward me and said “why
are my powers not working, it’s you”. Then Michael the Archangel came
out of me or I was looking through him; I am not exactly sure; however, I
grew massive and at the same time Power came out of me and hit the
charging false prophet and knocked him and the scarlet woman back. Then
words came out of me that said “Go back to your appointed place, it is not

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 141


your time to come here yet! Go!” And then the false prophet had like a
bloody nose and his face was messed up from the encounter. Then they fled
to South Africa where there was a meeting that the scarlet woman had put
together. She had put a group of tables all in black together; it looked like
an old-time castle set up, with the main table going across and then other
tables parallel to it. Each table had a massive group of people on it but the
main table had 3 seats in the middle of the table. Satan filled the middle
seat, on his right the antichrist and then the false prophet moved from the
far left end table to sit next to satan on the left. The scarlet woman sat on
the far-left seat. Then three or more tables on the lower level below this
table; they were very long black tables and were filled with the guests of
satan. I saw satan rise and said “Welcome, you have been called here to
receive your orders”. Then he gave them dark scrolls and gave some to the
antichrist to give out too. Then as he was talking, in a flash Uriel came and
cut every guest down and killed them all. I saw all their bodies lifeless and
laying all over. Then satan in a rage said to the scarlet woman, “Get me
more guest/servants, we need to restart”. End.

11th January 2016


Vision 1- Pillar of Cloud
As we went up to the mountain, I saw the pillar of Cloud like we did last
time from afar, as we got into Pergamos. I then saw Jesus, on the mountain
and He said “I am waiting up here for you”. He was waiting in the place we
had prayed the last time we came. The Pillar of cloud went all the way to
the sky.

12th January 2016


Vision 1- The Bride and Elijah and Moses
As we found out that the cable car was closed because of the wind, we had
to walk. Well, as we were walking up the mountain, the Bride was moving
incredibly fast, I was trying to keep up with her and it was very difficult. At
one point, I tried to run a bit but the spirit told me to let her go first. Then I
saw Elijah behind her and Moses walking up behind her. As this happened,
there was like a time event, I was taken back to the first time we went up the
mountain with Moses and Elijah to see Jesus pray and transfigured. I
experienced these two events at the same time for a while going back and
forth as we walked and then having them both be together for a time. Then
as we got closer, I wasn’t aware of this but I could feel it was like the same
time.

I also saw Uryaluzzael, massive, walking around us as we were going up the


mountain. I then saw a couple of cows and I was prompted to pray and bless
them. I didn’t ask why, I just prayed and blessed them like I felt led. And
reach my right hand toward them as I walked by and did this.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 142


Vision- Seeing Jesus come and take out Black midst
As we were praying on the mountain, I saw Jesus come and smile at me. He
reached His right hand out to me and then I saw this black midst leave my
body. It was sucked out from me and Jesus absorbed it. Then I felt a change.

Vision- Seeing Lightning, hearing Thunder and The Wind


As I was sitting praying, I saw lightning; it seemed to hit us but it seemed
far and close at the same time. I felt like there were many lightning bolts not
just one but they all happened at once. I felt when this happened, I felt the
thunder and heard it faintly because it was hard to know what the difference
was between the wind that was so strong and the thunder. But there was
thunder at the time of this lightning. It was like at this time the wind which
was already strong became even stronger. I had to get up and go to the
restroom at different times and the wind almost knocked me over 2 or 3
times . One time I felt like it almost picked me up off the ground. I was like
“wow” this is not a regular wind.

Vision- Seeing Jesus again/ Wall


I saw Jesus come back and touch me on the forehead and then on the chest
and my bones began to fill up with light and glory.
Then I was taken and I saw the corner of the wall of New Jerusalem in
NHNE. I just saw a glance of it. I see many glances of it in the Spirit many
times through the days and I can’t remember exactly when they are, but
many flashes.

Vision- Black Snakes and a white kid with red eyes and the 5 growing
massive
At this time I was seeing all these black snakes and they were watching us
and then went away from us. I also saw a young man with reddish type hair
and red eyes, he looked albino and he glared at me. Then I saw all these evil
snakes and then I just grew so big and I saw everyone of the 5 of us did the
same; we grew so massive we were like the size of the mountain and these
things just left us.

Vision- Anointing and merging of white dove and Holy Spirit as a dove/ And
multiple merging
I was lying down praying and I had just experienced a great touch from
Jesus. Then I saw a white dove come down and fly and land on my chest.
Then the white dove cooed and went into me and merged with me. I then
saw a giant form of a bird like a big dove that was the size of my body, and
it was the Holy Spirit as a dove. And the Holy Spirit came down and merged
with me and went into me. I then saw like a flash of light blast and it seemed
even when I opened my eyes that there was a light glow around me for a

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 143


while like if you have been swimming in a chlorinated pool and your eyes
have this white midst everywhere but it was more; it was also like I was
radiating light like a glow jelly fish. It was brief and it was only for a few
seconds. I thought was this the same as shining like the sun but I thought not
exactly. And also after this, there was a white smoke cloud for a second over
me and near me that came and seemed to be blown away by the wind after a
few seconds. I sat there for a few minutes and pondered what I was seeing
and experiencing because it was so fast and not exactly what I was
expecting. Now that I am writing it down and remember it. That is what
happened. I did see brief light flash like a flash grenade and brief white
cloud that flashed in the same way. I then thought shouldn’t this had been
longer and brighter in the physical and then just went to praying and kept it
in my heart and thanked the Lord for just a little physical manifestation and
prayed more and worshiped and loved on the Father. I then wondered and
pondered if it was just me so I kept it to myself.
Then I had this whole experience happen again. The second time it
happened though, the white dove stayed longer and then went in and out of
me two times. Then when the Holy Spirit came like a dove, He took longer
and sank into me and I felt my material and DNA mesh together with the
Holy Spirit. But it was subtle and didn’t electrify me like I have had
experiences before. It was so gentle but yet powerful that I was surprised
and wondered why it didn’t floor me and make me jerk like my first
encounter with the OX living creature JamiaJacEl. It just was so gentle like
a dove would be. Very gentle but yet went through the fabric of my being
and I felt pulsing for a little while in the spirit. Almost like when you start to
tune a guitar. You can get the right note perfect on the string but you have
to do it a few times because as things are stretched it needs to be re-tuned. It
felt like I was string being tuned, like it was my DNA and fabric that was
getting tuned.
At this time, I had to go to the restroom again, yes, again. I got up and it
seemed like the wind was going through me it was so strong. But I didn’t
quite notice it all the way but I wondered if this was just a physical wind,
but it was not. I now realized that a very strong physical and spiritual wind
was going through me it like went into my bones. It was very cool. And I
thought it was just the physical wind but it was not. It was the wind going
into my bones. I now know I was distracted because I had to go to the
restroom and was getting tired of going so much that I almost missed that
the wind was going threw me to my bones. I remember feeling it in my bones
but then losing the thought because I was trying to hurry to go to the
restroom.
Then I went back to pray. I prayed. Around this time, I saw us as a group in
the spirit. We were the same people but a bit different form and we were
bright like the sun and we had this amazing light and glory coming out of

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 144


us. It was so much that the whole mountain was burning and radiating light
because of us and the Glory of God coming out of us.
After that time, we went into a circle I think, to pray together.
Then after we rebuilt/added to the altar and prayed. I saw the four living
creatures there praising God and open portal to the throne room and glory
coming down on us. I saw myself again but I saw into my cells, I saw my
DNA change and the helix get infused with something else; it seemed the
structure changed to something different like a spiritual third strand was
added. It was just a flash it seemed, but when I went back into it this is what
I saw a third strand but it was joined like a spiritual manifestation into
where the DNA had like a triple helix. And it looked like the triple helix
created a mini- sphere/canopy at every joint where it was completed. Let me
describe, the new DNA strand created a triple helix structure in my DNA
and this new structure created a frame work that then inside of this frame
work created a mini-sphere canopy that linked right into the throne room. It
was like the space in the mini-sphere canopy was shared and one and the
same with the space where the 4 living creatures around the throne and
Ancient of Days (AOD) are. This area of the throne was in this mini- sphere
canopy. I can see the throne and 4 living creatures and the AOD on the
throne; all in that sphere. What is amazing is every triple helix joint that
had the new sphere had this same shared space or link. It was in me and I
was in it. I saw every strand of DNA had multiple of these mini-sphere
canopy’s so many I can’t count it was just all new in my DNA and how my
DNA is now. Then I saw all my cells change to this and the glory of God
come and start to change my cells into something that had like another
added canopy to it not just in the DNA strands but now around every cell. I
saw my bones again and they were bright with the glory light, and I then
saw my veins filled with this light and the light going through me. It was
amazing. I then started to look around, and I had x-ray vision in the spirit it
seemed for a while, and every one of the 4 was glowing and their bones
where changed also like mine.
I didn’t see Ps Johann like that though, it seemed he was just a ball of light
for a while and the light was radiating a different light than mine. It was a
higher light and it was going into us from him also and piercing us. I saw
the light now that I looked back and it was being hidden for his Bride, but
she had the same light as Ps Johann. Then it was being reflected into our
DNA and absorbed by Jehudah, me and Abraham. We were absorbing all
this. I didn’t notice it at the time but Jesus was also in the Ball of light that
was coming out of Ps Johann and also the Bride. Jesus was standing in this
light in the same space as Ps Johann where Ps Johann was sitting. I see
Jesus now, and He was ministering to us as High Priest in the High Priestly
robes but at the same time as King of Kings because I see Him now also
with His crown and sceptre. I then look at us around the altar praying. I see
the Lamb that came and I noticed Jesus was holding the Lamb and Jesus let

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 145


it down on the altar. I see the Lamb go into Ps Johann and like go through
him and the Lamb then went into the Bride and there it seemed to be
absorbed by the Bride.
I was amazed. I now just see that we had all these different layers of light
and dimensions coming into us.
I am just gazing at the event. Now, I see at the same time as we are standing
there praying, holding hands. I see two times merging, I see the New
Heavens and New Earth time. I see the trinity; I see the Word standing
behind Jehudah and the Father behind Abraham and the Holy Spirit behind
me, Aruel. I see how this is connected to when I saw Ps Johann and his
Bride holding hands and merging with the Father and Jesus in the New
Heavens and New Earth earlier.
Now I see it, I see Word merge with Jehudah, The Father merge with
Abraham, The Holy Spirit merge with me, Aruel. I see us three and we are
like gloves almost and I see our forms change to perfectly fit and
reflect/represent the trinity’s form. Our spiritual forms completely changed
and now each one is like a created copy/Reflection of the Trinity that
merged with us.
Again, I am shown and I see three forms, first set: Jehudah, Abraham, Aruel
then the 2nd set: I see the reflection of the Word, the Father and the Holy
Spirit that was made by the third set, which I see the actual uncreated Word,
Father, Holy Spirit. I then see again, the merge of all three of the three
come together. Then I see that the 1st forms and 2nd forms merge into one
and it’s like these creations became one and the same, a perfect created
reflection of the 3rd form, which is really the 1st uncreated Trinity Word,
Father, Holy Spirit. This is how I saw it.
Now, from there, I see 1st + 2nd and the 3rd (uncreated) come and then
merge with Ps Johann who had before merged with his Bride. Then this 5
being plus 3 in 1 became one for a while and just was Light and Love and
Life. Then separate out, I see that this 1st and 2nd form happened at a
different level already with Ps Johann and his Bride, and it was like this. I
see the trinity go into One, then merge with Ps Johann/Bride out of that they
had the 3 forms thing happen where the 1st form of Ps Johann and his Bride
merged with the 2nd form which was the perfect created reflection of the
One form merged trinity. Then I see a separation of the 3rd form of
uncreated merged trinity, from the 1st and now merged with 2nd form of
perfect created reflection of the One form merged trinity.
From that, then I see the 3rd form Uncreated One merged trinity, separate
into the trinity of Word, Father, Holy Spirit. I then see out of 1st + 2nd form
Ps Johann/Bride came the 2nd form perfect created reflection of the Trinity:
Word, Father, Holy Spirit. This perfect reflection 2nd form then came
behind Jehudah, Abraham, Aruel, and then the actual uncreated 3rd form
Trinity came again behind that and then merged the 3 forms together and

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 146


then separated out and left 1st +2nd form perfect created reflections of the
Word/Jehudah, Father/Abraham, Holy Spirit/Aruel.
Again, I see Ps Johann/Bride that are now the 1st + 2nd forms of the perfect
created reflection of merged One-trinity. Then separate into two and Ps
Johann 1st + 2nd stands and I see the 3rd uncreated form of the Word
which now separated into the Word and Jesus which is the and then the
uncreated Jesus now stands behind Ps Johann and creates a 2nd form
perfect created reflection of Jesus and the 1st +2nd uncreated form of Ps
Johann merges with 3rd form uncreated Jesus. So now Ps Johann is 1st and
2nd uncreated perfect reflection form of the One merged trinity + the 2nd
uncreated perfect reflection form of Jesus. I then see the 3rd form uncreated
Father go and pick a flower and create a 2nd created form of the Bride of
Christ. This is all I see, and the Bride with is 1st and 2nd form of the split
from Ps Johann comes and merges with the 2nd created form of the Body of
Christ. I then see Jesus the 3rd uncreated form who is already merged with
the Body of Christ come and merge with the Bride’s form (1st + 2nd) + 2nd
form Bride of Christ/Flower and then separate out leaving the Bride in a
new added dimension form like Ps Johann.
I see then the Bride and Ps Johann merge and the separate out. The Bride
comes and stands by me and the Holy Spirit in 3rd uncreated form, re-
merges with me separately. I see that the 3rd form Holy Spirit separately
merge in and through the Bride and again in and through me as that this is
what happened so I know it happened to the Bride first and then we both say
“Come”. And the scripture in Revelation comes up in me and the Spirit and
the Bride say Come!
I was amazed as I saw this all as I was taken back and saw more of what I
did not see as I was writing all this down.
I now notice this connection with the Holy Spirit that I have not noticed
before. I now see that after this event the Holy Spirit has been
overshadowing me in His 3rd uncreated form. I see now that I am more that
reflection is not an adequate enough word to describe, even though it is a
good way to describe, I am like now owned and one with the Holy Spirit. I
am like a physical evidence of the Holy Spirit, I see the Holy Spirit and it is
like I am a chosen manifestation in a physical created person but not just
physical but also created spiritual person of the Holy Spirit. I feel this great
Love and Jealousy of the Spirit of God for me now. I am seeing and
understand now what happened on that set of days.
I see now the Holy Spirit, singing over me as I am sitting on the couch on
the 11th of all night prayer and the Holy Spirit is in a form like a cloud over
and around me. I feel this Love of the Holy Spirit for me preparing me for
this merging. I see the Holy Spirit putting me to sleep and then doing things
in me like putting more Love and working with Jesus to prepare for the
DNA of the Spirit to come into me through Jesus DNA. I don’t understand
this but this is just what I am seeing and getting. Then the Holy Spirit wakes

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 147


me up to pray. I then see Uriel come up and pour anointing oil on me that
goes into my bones and creates a fire on me. And I see the fire consume me
as I prophesie to the nations and the things that God wanted me to say. I see
the Sword of the Word go out and strike things and I see Angels go out and
carry out the Word. I see the Eyes of the Lord watching over the Word. I
then see Jehudah come up and give everyone scrolls that Ps Johann and his
Bride had written. I see Ps Johann writing some and his Bride then write
some on a scroll and it is given to Jehudah and he gives it to me and
Abraham that night. I see we ate the scrolls. And it was preparing us for this
merging. I see Abraham go around and he looks at all the progression and
reports back as he writes down on a tablet everyone’s progress and he takes
the results back to Ps Johann who then shares it with Jesus and the Father.
I then see orders come from the Father and Jesus and back down and more
scrolls that have already been written are given out to Jehudah and he then
gives it out to us. I see Jehudah eating scrolls and we are eating scrolls. I
then see many angels come and minister things to us as the Lord
commanded. I then see the Holy Spirit is overshadowing all of us.
I see Tussayuniel come and was worshipping the Lord in our midst and
bringing this presence to the earth as we were getting prepared.
I see myself then lying in bed and I see that my being is taken to the throne
room in front of the AOD and I am put in front of the throne lying down in
the midst of the 4 living creatures. Then I am shifted and I am put in the Ox
JamiaJac El and the other 3 are in each of the 4 living creatures after they
were just in front of the throne. I see Ps Johann and I didn’t see him
sleeping and lying down like we were, I see him kneeling and he is right in
front of the throne in Jesus.
I see us walking up to the Mountain now and the hosts of Heaven with us.
It’s like a time convergence with the time of Jesus on the mountain getting
transfigured but it’s also linked to the time of Moses on the mountain where
the Lord came down. And this time is linked to when the Elders came up on
the mountain with Moses. All these times seem to be together and one yet
separate.
I then see us on the mountain and I see Angels with silver trumpets
sounding. And I hear a rumbling in the earth and there is a massive earth
quake and shifting in the earth. I hear a groaning of creation and I hear a
voice, a being comes out of the earth and goes to Uriel who is standing
guard over us and around us with a host of heaven as we pray, he is with his
12 archangels and then I see the 4 archangels, 4 living creatures and the 24
elders are there in small form equally around you, Ps Johann. But this being
that came from the earth seems to represent creation and asks Uriel are
these finally the mature sons of God that we have been waiting for and Uriel
says “Yes, it has been decreed by the Ancient of days”. These are the ones
and this is the time, now you can be at peace and rest for although the time
of Judgment of the fallen ones is to come, this is the time of the

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 148


manifestation of the mature sons of God to fulfill the Word of the Lord. I
then see that that as we are sealed and merged, that there is a blast of light
and sound that goes through creation that starts in the earth and then goes
out in a earth quake through the earth then throughout all creation in the
warring zone.
This being that came from the earth that represents creation is green. I see
he has this new energizing and disappears.
I see Uriel signal to Urriectmael in the pristine section and Uriel says
prepare the Pristine Angels to come. Urriectmael turns and says orders to
his section and I see legions of Worship Angels waiting to come down to the
earth that he is instructing. But they do not come yet.

We then went on to Germany to build altars. One of the special altars built
at Okertal, which mean betroth, released pristine angels from the pristine
universe to the planet earth for the first time. The Okertal altars were
specially built in four sections with each of the face of the four creatures,
being filled by a soulmate couple, spiritually functioning as one to release
the anointing of the pristine universe and the Millennium onto the planet
earth to release those two events upon the earth: the pristine universe in the
sections of the refuge zones now in this revival and the Millennium for the
Rapture generation. All five of us decided to keep the Transfiguration
experience secret, for it was a secret trip, and also the relationship between
me and my potential soulmate secret, and every one of us were to walk in
holiness and consecration to this end time move.

After our return from the secret trip, I packed and got ready for the USA
church planting trip in February 2016. It seemed that the trip to Pergamos
and Okertal released something special for throughout the whole year of
2016, Arion had numerous encounters of me and my soulmate in heaven
that increased his spiritual capacity and so did Jehudah who also received
the same encounters. Arion grew by leaps and bounds in the energizing
from the spiritual realm when my soulmate and I ministered together from
the heavens as a couple. Some downloads are as below:

Arion’s visions:
9th March 2016
I see another angle of this: I see the 3 of us standing next to each other and
the energy between us grows to increasing level, I see the energizing coming
out of Ps Johann and his Bride and I see Jesus behind them and the energy
flows from Jesus to us all. I see this energy grow and as it does then I see us
3 become like one and such fast energy you can’t tell us three apart. We are
like one big sphere at first and we grow over this whole galaxy. I see all
these planets, and stars and meteors and space debris was out of alignment.
It was like the fall and the fallen angels twisted even creation and it was all

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 149


off, the sound was off, the rotation, was off, all the fabric was off. I see us
and we work together. I see us putting everything back to pristine quality.
The rotation of planets became a perfect sphere, the fabric of the DNA of
the enemy was removed, I see and feel the glory light of Christ and I feel the
energy of New Jerusalem now infused into the creation which was not there
before the fall. It was like returned to before the fall pristine quality and
added New Jerusalem glory with the dimension of Christ.

I see the Bride come over to me now and take me aside. The Bride says how
is your seeing and hearing. I say to her wow, its wonderful a whole new
spectrum is open to me now. The Bride said this would have been given to
the former 7 thunders in a measure; it’s an ability to see all that we are
doing as a witness. The three are given this ability as they grow, as I have it
and Ps Johann. But it would have taken longer for you to get it; as this gift
is designed to help people grow and give them vision of the will and plan of
God for their lives. It’s a gift given to leaders to see the destiny of people so
they can pray them into it like in Galatians 4 to travel in prayer till Christ
be established in them. And at the proper time to confirm callings and
gifting and predestination and history so the sheep can understand who they
are in Christ and their call. This is a powerful gift and a great responsibility
but it had to come with a test of trusting and submitting to Ps Johann. It
will now allow the authority for you to look at the right times into all that
archive and scrolls of anyone and anything in the library. Only you will
need to grow into it and you must know that there will be times you will
have to wait to see things because your growth might not be at the same
level for you to handle the revelation. In this, Ps Johann and I will let you
know. But we want you to know that you do have free access now. Jesus
wanted you to know that the tests of Love are the greatest tests. And this test
of Love that you passed has been written down for all to see. The former 7
thunders failed this test of love for the body and for Ps Johann and that was
also a test of Love for Jesus that he failed. You have passed this test. You
had to be tested and go through all these things before going to Singapore
so that the Love and mercy and things the Lord Jesus wanted released
would be done. There must not be a repeat of any of the past debacle of
judgment and anger especially now that the New Jerusalem glory has been
released. I felt this could have cost me my life and destiny was the risk. But
at the same time, I saw the Lord Jesus working to help me so I would not
fall. I now see only by His great grace and mercy I am what I am. I would
have failed if it were not for that. O how humbled I am. I see now that I
would be worse than the worst and fail every test if Jesus had not helped
me. And it’s like wow, He protected me for His own name sake. Truly what
a wonderful Jesus we serve.
Then the Bride said what you received was the ability to see and know. The
light you saw represents the spectrums of creation all of them. Seeing,

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 150


hearing, thinking, being, everything that gives off energy you had access to
before. Not all have been given this and only the 7 thunders prophets had a
measure of this given to them. You got it plus what you used to have
restored to you. Now your avatar will take some growth time but it’s yours,
believe it by faith. I said yes, I will, I believe it. Then the Bride continued
Aruel you’re growing very fast, you are galaxy size now. I said wow, let it
be done to me according to the Word of the Lord. The Bride said your
avatar is unique after the transfiguration. It can handle sizes greater than
normal which unrenewed man can conceive in the spirit. I and Ps Johann
are still leaps and bounds in growth greater. You have connected back to a
greater level, to Aruel your original self. You will be able to tap in to many
things now that you hadn’t been before. Another reason for this is you are
to help record down more for Ps Johann that you have ever thought. There
is a whole spectrum of things to come by country, by area for the churches
that you will need to see and catch and record down so that he can take it
and add to it the dimension that has been given to see. Aruel even though
you have been given to see all spectrums in the universe, there are still
things hidden even from you until the right time. And Ps Johann and myself
have been given this ability to see that. For you, to understand this, there is
a place of creation above you and your only access is through us so you
can’t see it unless we show it to you. I said yes, thank you.

Then the Bride said, Ps Johann is going to be receiving all the mysteries of
the Bible and all the perfect knowledge and doctrine to give to the church to
perfect the bride. Yes Aruel, I represent that bride and I have to be taught
these things first. In that time, you will confirm things for him and us and
also you will get many things on events in the world as a witness and
watchman. These, although important, are not as important as the
revealing of all the mysteries and perfect doctrine of the bible. So it is
important that you don’t miss what you are supposed to get so it doesn’t
cause Ps Johann to have to catch for you the things you are supposed to
catch. He needs to focus all his energy on receiving these things. The Bride
continued, it is not that he will not see many things you do or help confirm
what you see. But his role is to confirm and add the extra dimension to your
downloads. Do you understand? I said yes, I think I do. The Bride
continued, Aruel don’t worry we are a family and a team so if you need help
we will help you in your calling and even catching things. But you must be
aware of this and keep focus even among the challenges and hard times.
You are not of this world even though you are in this world. End.

Revelation of great mystery of Ephesians 5:31-32

Jesus appeared to me at the end of February and told me it was time to


understand more of the greatest mystery of Christ and His Bride. He

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 151


reminded me of the special call He spoke to me earlier last year. It was
revealed to me that as God, He cannot function in any sexual capacity,
though He became son of man and is like us but not of sinful flesh, and was
a male who had to be circumcised (Luke 2:27). He said that He had
redeemed both the sexual organs of male and female, through His
circumcision where His blood was shed and through His birth when He
passed through the birth canal, where blood was also shed in the umbilical
cord cutting. However, as God, He cannot marry and produce offspring as
this role is the role of created beings. He showed that my special calling as
the only human who will not see death, is to be transfigured, transformed
and together with my soulmate redeem the act of sexual union which is the
joining of Bride and Bridegroom as spoken in Paul’s revelation in Ephesians
5:31-32. We would both release the fullness of spiritual energy when we
become one together, especially when we would be translated as one on
19th September 2060. I saw the transforming glory come upon the last
generation for the remaining years before the Rapture and it changed even
the physical bodies of each of the saints and even deposited something like a
seed glory for the Millennium generation.

He said this has been predestined before time and the special number of
four had been placed in the purification rituals of Moses: male child unclean
for 7+33, female child unclean for 14+66 (Leviticus 12:1-5). He said that
every law in the Old Testament has to be fulfilled in the New Testament and
the personification of Christ must unite with the personification of the Bride
to prophetically released this. In the downloads, Jesus even specified that
when the time comes, the marriage act must take place in Pergamos, and
then Madaba and then in Snowy mountain, the three places that will see
glory: in Pergamos, the Spirit of glory coming to the earth; in Madaba, the
Rapture glory for the Tribulation saints; and in Snowy Mountain, the
Rapture glory of the end time church. Though the union in the physical is to
take place at marriage, He also indicated that though the union of the spirit
was strong between me and my potential soulmate, the union of the soul
was still not strong, and He could not release the level of pristine universe
anointing and the level of Transfiguration glory that He wanted to. Without
these two, the level of protection over the whole glorious church is not as
strong. Thus as a result of all these downloads, I sought to try to bring my
potential soulmate to unite more in the soul, and wrote to her some of the
downloads.

Upon my return from USA COG launched in March 2016 to Australia, I


discovered that Amy had already gone through all my secret prayer files and
documents with secret names of angels, my secret spiritual pre-existence
name, etc. It all blew up and everyone accused me of adultery, and accused
me of having lust for young women. They dragged up my past all over again

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 152


and tried to associate it with all that Amy had written in her nine pages. I
tried to explain and defend but by then everyone was filled with anger, rage,
and allowed the same root of bitterness that was in Amy to control them.
Unknown to them, the fallen angels, who had feared the glory of the pristine
universe and the Transfiguration anointing, had a field day destroying the
unity of the church. I called a meeting of all the leaders at that time of
Singapore, Australia, USA, Malaysia, Canada and in that meeting in May
2016, there was a unanimous decision that the path forward was through
separation and divorce. I asked for more time and prayer to take that step
and told everyone that it is a difficult step to take, knowing that the Lord
hates divorce and yet it has to balance with a willingness to live in peace
(Malachi 2:16; 1 Corinthians 7:15). However, I felt that the most secret
sanctum in my life, my secret meditation file had been violated by those I
deemed close, and I can never return back to live even under the same roof.
For I have been betrayed countless times, maligned, judged, condemned,
misunderstood, hated and despised. Everyone accused me of sin but are
blind to their own sins. I cried many tears alone on many days. I was
experiencing my Gethsemane. The Lord Jesus appeared many times and
comforted me, and told me that the way to resurrection power is always
through the cross. This ending in 2016 was the Gethsemane and the Cross
that I must experience in order to enter fully into the decade of Resurrection
Power of our Lord Jesus Christ.

I continued to dedicate myself to the service of the Lord despite all these
experiences, and we push forward towards the July Outpourings which the
Lord has told us to prepare for. We had lovely meetings and the Lord healed
and did wonderful things throughout the month of July 2016 both in USA
and in Canada. During the July Outpourings of which many visions and
healings took place, we were visited by Nelly’s son who resides in USA.
Nelly is a prophetess whose children inherited the gift of prophecy and her
son has open visions. He had not been regularly attending traditional
churches because he saw a lot of darkness in many traditional churches.
When he came to drop off Nelly and her daughter, who visited with him
while attending the July Outpourings, he was surprised to see a number of
angels present in the meetings, and they introduced themselves as Michael,
Gabriel, Raphael and Phanuel. These were the main captains of archangels
over the angelic realm and he was surprised to see all of them gathered at
this meeting; which made him stayed for some of the meetings. He also saw
the light that was inside me and a light around my head, which I know came
from the merging with the Lord and His angels and spirit beings.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 153


Failure of USA Prophecy Predictions

From the USA Outpouring in July 2016, we continued on in August in


altar building throughout USA in all the four regions that will fight with
each other in the Civil War. In September of that year, we went to an area
near the highest mountain in Jordan at Wadi Rum to build an altar to the
Lord, and then had overnight prayer meetings in Madaba and Mukawir
again. The angels of the Lord made themselves known through appearances
in the sky to those whose spiritual eyes were opened. We returned for the
October miracle services in Singapore and once again in the week-long
services held, the Lord’s presence was strong and powerful. But the end of
October, everyone was looking forward to the USA Prophecy coming to
pass. When the predicted president did not come to be elected, it was time to
examine the reasons why it was not fulfilled. There were three angles to
look at:
1. The entire prophecy was false and we need to examine the source
2. The prophecy was correct but it was for the next election and not the
immediate one
3. The conditions for the man predicted were not all fulfilled
After careful examination of it, I deduced that the first time the prophecy on
USA came, the civil war was mentioned and a ‘president as popular as JFK’
would arise from the Democrat party plus the five main causes of the civil
war were the main focus from the Lord. The first time the prophecy came,
no names were given but subsequent prophecies contain the name of a man.
Since the prophecy came through a visitation of the Lord Jesus, it is unlikely
that such a word from the Lord could be so wrong. A public session was
held to discuss the failed prediction, so that it would also be a learning
lesson for all of us. We have re-examined the original word on the prophecy
and believe it still applies to the civil war timing. This failure of the USA
prophecy coming to pass, with the failure of the three miracles occurring in
Singapore, with some of the judgments supposedly occurring within a time
frame not occurring, demands that all prophecies from the same source must
be re-examined. The following are my notes when we re-examined the
prophecies:
1. There are serious interruptions or distractions even when the
prophecies were being received.
2. If the prophecies are true, then the interpreted application of or the
reception of prophecy with a time-based fulfilment might have been
incorrect.
In examining all the downloads and prophecies, it is obvious that there is
genuine sincerity and desire from Arion in wanting to hear from the Lord,
so there is no question that the Word of the Lord had come through to him
in visions. Some parts of it could be superimposed by the soul unknowingly,
and so it was at the point after the timing of the judgments did not come to

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 154


pass, that stricter criteria were applied to examine especially the predictive
prophecies. For example, there was prediction of an earthquake in Hong
Kong on July 11th 2016 at 9:03am, delivered to me on April 18th 2016 which
I sent to Abraham to pray about for confirmation as it is his home territory.
The vision was true, when I peered into the spiritual world, but somehow
the dates seen were not correct. Abraham also prayed and fasted and told me
that his spirit felt that it was not time for that – the prophecy spoke of it
being so devastating that China had to step in to help. The date came and
went without fulfilment. I can confirm that there was no attempt to deceive
but a true genuine attempt to hear but by then more emotions in the soul,
and perhaps a desire for authentication had arose that mixed the visions with
a dateline.

Even the old seven thunders with open vision, had a miss-step prophecy
on the time and date of a stock market crash a few years ago, which did not
come to past. It is possible to miss on dates and times for sometimes seeing
into the spiritual realm with genuine visions need adjustments into
interpretation of spiritual time into natural time. It is just like natural
travelling between time zones or a question of which time zone do
astronauts hold onto when they orbit through space. Adjustments to true
natural time are affected by our default mode, so astronauts tend to keep
their natural ‘sense of time’ according to their home countries. On top of all
this is the fact that sometimes an event is seen to occur in the spiritual world
but its effect in the natural take time. This type of phenomena occurs even
when we are watching sometime on the news or internet and we
differentiate an event recorded sometime in the past or in real time. With the
added facts that an event can occur purely in the spiritual realm, which only
affects the natural realm, and that unlike news or the internet, future events
can be observed as past events, more calibration needs to be done when
seeing visions of the spiritual realm.

When the USA prophecy did not come to pass, I had encouraged Arion to
re-examine certain aspects of prophecy and had hoped to guide him through
to understand more of this dimensions and become more accurate. Knowing
the impact the failed USA prophecy would have on everyone, I had advised
that it is good to temporarily get back to work, so that there is a steady
income, with intentions to still help as we were able to until we could
weather the impact of the USA prophecy not coming to pass. Sadly, he
chose to resign suddenly and publicly in January 2017. Except for this one
incident, he and his family had conducted their relationship with me
respectfully and honourably. It is undeniable that during the two years of his
work together with us from December 2014 when we met him to January
2017, we have had good times together in the Lord and there were
downloads that contributed to the archive of seven thunders prophecy,

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 155


especially in the areas of USA, that built upon and confirm the first seven
thunders prophecies. With his departure, the mantle of the seven thunders
prophet awaits to be filled by an individual chosen and trained by the Lord
and His angels.

Shakings in Singapore COG

From the Sydney rebellion in March 2016 to the present writing of this
section of this book in February 2017, there were continued attempts to
spread negative things to upend those who follow this end time move. In the
natural it would have been easier to build another traditional church without
the end time move, avoiding all these subjects of predictive warnings that
we have summarized in the appendix of what were the core messages that
make up this end time move (Summary of End time message in Appendix).
However, if these warnings and predictions are real and true, then it is
imperative to continue to hold the mandate delivered by God to prepare this
world for that which is to come, no matter how hard the road, no matter how
great the shakings, no matter how great the persecutions. We have to ask
ourselves the fundamental heart questions:
1. Do we believe in these visions?
2. Has the antichrist and the false prophet truly been born?
3. Are the predictions in 2 Thessalonians 2:3 that the apostate church
will rise before the antichrist arises true?
4. Are we prepared to pay the price to follow through when many drop
out?
If the answer is Yes to all of these questions, then we know that we are
being tested in all three areas like the seed sown by the sower in Matthew
13, Luke 8 and Mark 4. Firstly, we are tested whether we truly believe the
visions, then we must endure hardship and persecutions which arise for the
word’s sake, and lastly, we must not be distracted by the things of this life.
On top of all these is the primary consideration that in the greatest shaking
of earthquakes and tsunamis that will hit the earth in 2029, if nothing is
done, perhaps nearly one third of the population of the earth will be killed
(Hebrews 12:25-29; Haggai 2:6-9). This in itself is a sobering call to awake
from spiritual slumber for at this time of writing, we are only twelve years
away.

Visitation of Archangel Raphael

In the midst of all these shakings, God continues to encourage and


strengthen those who believe. While in Australia at around midnight on
February 22nd 2017, after a time of fellowship and prayers, after everyone
had gone, Archangel Raphael came and delivered this message:

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 156


All the first generation of the four living creatures will have the blessings
and energising of living right into the Rapture although their callings differ
from the Rapture generation. With the departure of E. who formerly stands
in the face of the lion, C. has been given the blessing of merging with the
four living creatures. Because C. and B.L. have received their appointment
last Sunday and stands between the first and the second generation of those
who live to see the Rapture, and has been given the blessing of standing and
merging with the four living creatures, of the face of the lion; and because
of the faithfulness of the three who have passed this final test – a hard test
and the most important one – all who merged with the four living creatures
will not see death but live and serve the Lord Jesus with the four living
creatures. This was the final test to equip and prepare for the blessing of the
Rapture generation.
For as they stand with the Voice that cries at midnight, and the Right hand
of God, one who does not die, so they shall also receive the blessings and
the quickening of life as ones who will not die. They shall remain the
foundations and the pillars of New Jerusalem as appointed by the Lord
Most High:

Deborah - foundation of the Eagle section


Abraham - pillar built upon the foundation in the Eagle section

Martin - foundation of the Ox section


“X” - An individual is being consecrated and chosen for the pillar in the Ox
section

TL – foundation of the face of the Man


Soulmate of the Right Hand of God – she will stand in this place and be the
pillar as the Bride, the perfect reflection of the face of the Man

Colin – foundation of the Lion section


Jehudah - pillar built upon the foundation in the Lion section

Each of you have been given the divine life and quickening to live and not
die, to see the Rapture of the glorious church. The Lord has been preparing
for this since the beginning of this move and has to separate those who
believe and enter into the rest, from those who hear but who did not mix
with faith (their hearing) and thus do not enter into the rest (Hebrews 4:1-
3):

February 26th 2017 will not be just a day of clarification but it shall be a
day of special anointing and impartation. For all the four archangels
(Michael, Gabriel, Raphael, Phanuel) will be present to impart and anoint
INTO THE REST of the Lord’s Sabbath. The time has come and is now.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 157


Proclaim this word to those who have ears and hear the voice of the Holy
Spirit, “Today, if you hear His voice, do not harden your hearts” (Hebrews
6:7). For the Holy Spirit will come on you and you will cease from your
works. A river of life will flow forth and you will be carried by the River of
Life of the Lord.
After this message, I saw Archangel Raphael stood as he always had. I saw
Archangel Uriel went forth with his army of angels with swords drawn. This
visitation was most unexpected and the Lord had turned a day set aside for
Q & A into a day of impartation. So I have written all these, to bring the
story of the Road to Glory to its current update in February 2017. To those
who believe in the visions, we move on forward. To those who do not, we
commend them into the loving hands of our Lord Jesus.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 158


Quantum Time Completed
Merging
of Natural Self trained on earth
and
Spiritual Self trained in heaven
Begun in May 2017
Completed on 18th September 2017

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 159


Chapter 16
Quantum Time Merging 18th September 2017
Extraordinary things have always taken place at the beginning of each
Quantum Time decade, and while 2006, I was taken to heaven regularly, the
year of 2016 began with the receiving of the Transfiguration, which was
quickly followed by much persecution and misunderstanding. I have
consistently told many people that I have always felt that Johann
Melchizedek Peter was a different person from Peter Tan, and this proved
true in May 2017 when I went on a second long fast of forty-three days. I
was taken into the heavens and shown that my life was divided into three
periods of Quantum time (18 September of the years 1957, 1987, 2017). I
saw in visions my physical birth at about 3:15am that momentarily at the
moment of giving birth, my mother was taken into Quantum Time and the
date was 18th September 1987, then it was like I was separated into two
selves (no other words to describe this), a part of me (and my mother) was
taken back to 1957 and another part of me was taken to heaven; and the two
selves were to merged back into one again on 18 September 2017 when I
would reached the age of thirty and be ready for an anointing to be received
on that day. The merging had begun in the forty-three day fast and part of
the side effects is the restoring of youth to thirty years old. I remembered
my natural sister Bettina told me that my mother had told her that on the day
when I was born, she saw something like a light came and flash on her for a
moment of time. She did not know or understand what it was.

I was astounded by this revelation and vision. It was good that I was on a
fast and I did not sleep much during this fast but yet was energized
tremendously. A strange thing also took place at the end of the fast. I had
originally scheduled a meeting with my Jewish friend, who runs a business
with other Jewish people, as months before I did not know nor was prepared
to go on a long forty-three day fast as we were fasting from seven days to
ten days, then twenty-one days before I decided to bring it to forty days plus
three. At the end of the forty days fast, when I met with him, he gave me a
gift to put me into a three-year program, which means taking photos of me.
How odd and strange the timing was, especially when I had been so
energized throughout the forty-three day fast into the age of thirty. It was
like God wanted a physical testimony of this phenomena. Not all the Jews
were devout but this friend of mine really loves Yahweh God and was an
orthodox Jew who believed in Yahweh (but have not come to Jesus yet at
this point in writing).

During the May 2017 fast, I experienced a lot of energizing and hardly
slept but was afreshed every day. Also the archangel Uryaluzzael met with

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 160


me and merged with me after revealing that the Seven Thunders position
was originally given to John the Apostle (Revelations chapter 7) and must
be held by an apostle who will unfold all the mysteries of the Word
prophesied by prophets of old. He had announced the completion of all the
mysteries of God (Revelations 10:5-7). He told me that this was the reason
why he had asked that I changed my name to John (which I spelt as Johann)
when I realized that he was the Seven Thunders archangel. All prophets who
functioned in the capacity of the Seven Thunders revelation were supposed
to work under my spiritual authority. I came to understand now why when
they tried to operate outside of my spiritual authority that it did not work but
led to errors. Most of these prophets only see politically like Daniel of the
affairs of earthly kingdoms and nations but could not relate it to the
completion of the mysteries of God, which was my jurisdiction assigned by
God from the foundation of the earth.

I was also shown that when I left and started TOG church in 1986, that in
the growth of that into 1987, there was a confluence of the two selves in the
natural time (one on earth and one in heaven) which is why the past ministry
growth and impact on the planet earth was the years 1986 to 1997. I was
shown that a change was required in 1996, and I was supposed to flow with
moving to New Zealand but my neglect in that flow resulted in the crisis
events of 1997. Australia then became my base in 1997. I was also shown
that after the heavenly experiences of 2006, I was to resolve my personal
life matters and not resolving it, caused the continued crises of 2009-2010,
2014-2016, which ended up with me making a firm decision which I had
delayed making, as explained in previous chapter of this book. Of course,
the full picture of whatever God has in mind, would have depended also on
the decisions of those around me and not just my decision. Nevertheless,
regardless of how and what people chose, I was only required to always
choose the Lord first, and He would have arranged circumstances into His
perfect Will unaffected by the decisions of others. The only effect on others
was whether they take an active part in this end time revival or not; for it
was predestined to be led by the Voice that Cries at Midnight.

When the merging started of the two selves into one, while there was a
positive side effect of renewal of youth in the physical, even more powerful
was the effect on the soul. I recalled the times spent with the various saints,
the long talks with Moses, Elijah, Daniel, Joseph, etc. and how each one
imparted some of their experiences. I recalled the times spent with all the
various archangels and spirit beings preparing for these end times. The most
glorious was the mysteries of creation of this Universe and the visits to the
Uncreated realms. I saw that the Uncreated was like a state of being (like a
thought realm but much, much greater than that as we do not have human
words to describe). I saw that when God created this Universe, energies

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 161


flowed from the Uncreated realm and that all spirits (humans, angels, etc)
were created through the breath of God, whilst the habitation of planets was
created through the energies of God. When the Bible says that God rested, it
was like the whole creation went into a rest state with just a sustaining
energizing from God’s realm.

I saw that everything in the created Universe was but a mirror of the
“thought realms” of God in the Uncreated realm. There was a city of the
Father in the uncreated realm (not quite like a natural city but a state of
being type city) which parallels the New Jerusalem in the new heavens and
earth. Everything and everyone was sustained by the thoughts and being of
God from the Uncreated realm. I was shown that just as the Word came
from the Uncreated Realm of the Father, Jesus came to bring us back to
where He was with the Father (John 17:8, 24). I saw that when Jesus said
that He is the Way, the Truth and the Life, that Jesus paved a way to the
Uncreated Realm for us to be with the Father in Him. I saw many of the
mysteries of God, which words are insufficient to describe them but as we
progress in this revival, we will be able to experience them so that
understanding can flow.

There is much more but I will continue writing on this in time.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 162


Appendix
Prayer Items for Three day fast (March 28th to 30th)
1. God has mercy on USA and push back the civil war to begin only in
the years of famine so that more souls can be saved.
2. The launch of the COG in USA on February 9th 2016. Pray for
Arion Crow as he takes this role to be my associate pastor in COG
USA. Pray for the establishment of COG churches throughout USA
and Mexico. Pray for God to strengthen Ussasumael, the General
Angel under COG Angel assigned to Arion. Ussasumael is also the
team leader angel over the ten churches.
Pray for God to strengthen the Angels and the Spirit Beings under
them over USA and Mexico
3. The Angel over USA & the Spirit Being under him –
Tussayulazzulael & Ramulacmael
The Angel over Mexico & the Spirit Being under him – Sumaetmael
and Sussuma
4. Pray to release the fullness of the Spirit of Elijah in all its seven fold
glory upon COG church, present and future – all the ten base
churches and the ten thousands churches on planet earth. Pray that
God would strengthen Archangel Gabriel who is charged with the
release of the Spirit of Elijah upon the bride of Christ, the Lamb’s
wife (Revelation 21:2, 9). Pray for God to strengthen the angel
Astacutael who works with Elijah and will now work with us.
5. Pray for the bride of Christ, the Lamb’s wife (Revelation 21:2, 9) to
get herself ready as the glorious church, without spot or blemish or
any such thing (Ephesians 26-27) for her bridegroom, the Lamb of
God. And that the bride would even now in these end of days,
received the powers of the Age to come, the glory of New
Jerusalem, the glory of our Lord God Almighty and of the Lamb in
Revelation 21:1-3 and Revelation 22:1-5.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 163


Prayer Items for second Three day fast (April 4th to 6th)
1. Pray for the establishment of COG Canada in Toronto, Ontario,
Canada. Pray for God to strengthen
The Angel over Canada, Aruectmael
and the Spirit Being under him, Ukmatucmael.
Pray for those who will come and be involved in this church. If
anyone of the twelve or seventy answers this call, we will establish
COG Canada also in the first week of February 2016.
2. Pray for the establishment of the spiritual super highway and bridge
that connects Toronto, Canada to the Archangel Raguerael in
Canberra, ACT, Australia. Pray for God to strengthen the General
Angel Estateriel who is based in Canada but under Raguerael. Pray
for God to continue to strengthen Archangel Raguerael, his General
Estateriel and all the other angels under Raguerael in their
assignments over the bride of Christ, the Lamb’s wife throughout the
entire planet earth, especially in the areas of refuge.
3. Pray for the complete eradication of the spirit of Baal worship in
Canada as it is one of our important based countries. Pray also for
the eradication of the spirit of Baal in all the countries where the ten
major base churches that we establish on planet earth are.
4. Pray for the establishment of 24 hour praise and worship in all the
ten major church bases we have on planet earth. Australia, being our
Headquarters, will have 24 hour worship in our base churches in
Canberra, Sydney and every other state capital. Some of the other
ten thousand churches which are important to the kingdom of God
will also have 24 hour worship.
5. Pray for the establishment of all the twelve, the thirty, the seventies
and the one hundred and twenties, all five hundred of them; and the
establishment of the seven thousand core spiritual leaders, the seven
million spiritual captains, the seven hundred million heads of
spiritual home fellowships under the ten thousand churches on planet
earth. Pray for the one million intercessors, the ten million fivefold
ministers and the ten thousand pastors over the ten thousand
churches. Pray for the ten thousand churches to be established on
planet earth.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 164


Prayer Items for Seven Day fast – April 24th to May 1st 2015

1. To receive and absorb fully the glory of Father God, the Lamb of
God and new Jerusalem and bring it into manifestations within the
glorious church of Jesus in the present time and increased into the
fullness of it, and maintain it right up to the Rapture (Hebrews 6:5;
Revelation 21:22-27; 22:3-5).
2. To create an atmosphere, a covering, a canopy, a cathedral of
holiness and worship of the heavenly holy of holies and of the glory
of the powers of the age to come of new Jerusalem within, upon and
around the glorious church of Jesus – upon Ps Johann, all the twelve,
the 30s, the 70s X2, the 120s X2, and upon all the captains and
leaders of millions, captains of hundreds of thousands, captains of
tens of thousands, captains of thousands and hundreds, all 10,000
pastors of the ten thousand churches, the 10 million fivefold
ministers, over every single individual and member of the glorious
church. That the highest dimension of holiness from the very holy of
holies of God Almighty and of the glory of New Jerusalem, would
be received, and absorbed into the DNA of every single member of
the glorious church and all would be perfectly one with Jesus and
with the Father (John 17:21-24).
3. To release the pillars of fire and of glory, the clouds of glory of the
holy of holies and of the powers of the age to come of the glory of
new Jerusalem permanently upon all of the glorious church 24 hours
every day until the Rapture (Colossians 3:16; Ephesians 5:18-20;
Revelation 3:7, 12; Acts 15:16 – the key of David, the tabernacle of
David - establishment of 24 hours praise and worship both
corporately and individually); resulting in 24 hours worship on
planet earth to the glory of our Father God and of the Lamb.
4. For the supernatural manifold wisdom of God ( Ephesians 3:9-11;
Proverbs 8:12-36; 1 Corinthians 1:30; Colossians 3:16) to be
released upon Ps Johann and all the five hundred governors (from all
of the twelve, thirties, seventies X 2, one hundred and twenty x 2
and others) over the nations of Cathedral of Glory (6 billion plus
strong), and the hundreds of thousands of governing bodies and
departments of Cathedral of Glory to administrate the multifaceted
aspects of the glorious church in all spirit, soul and body needs of
every single individual member of the church, the bride of Christ,
spread across all the nations of the planet earth; including the
administration of the facilitation of the present premises of the
church in Sydney & Singapore and every other church to be planted
henceforth from the hundreds now into the six billion plus and more
at the Rapture. That every need of the individual members – spirit,
soul and body – would be properly administrated and cared for liken

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 165


to the organization of heaven and the new heavens, involving both
angels, spirit beings, men and women both on earth and in heaven.
5. For the wisdom of God to administrate and bring forth the signs and
wonders, creative miracles, DNA healings, and all manner of
supernatural powers demonstrated and released by the permission of
our Triune God, including the signs and wonders of the age to come;
this includes the beginning of miracles in Singapore & Australia and
the establishment of signs and wonders in the churches planted in
Canada, USA, and all the rest of the nations on planet earth. This
includes the proper selection of the days and timings for the three
creative miracles released this year 2015 and other flow of many
more miracles that proceed from the overflow of these three
miracles, especially for the appearances and manifestations of the
archangel Phanuel, his angel general Rovashael, the spirit being
Uccatucmael, his spirit being generals Zerubbabel and Joshua and
the entrance into the permanent establishment of signs and wonders
in the ministry from the decade of powers from 2016 to 2026
onwards.
6. That the fullness of wealth as prophesied in Isaiah 60, Haggai 2:6-9;
Genesis 15:14; Galatians 3:13-14; Exodus 3:20-22; Proverbs 8:15-
19, 21; 2 Corinthians 8:9 would come upon Cathedral of Glory and
Johann Ministries and every other ministry or required business area
that Ps Johann will help set up and bless to enable the completion of
the work of the glorious church on planet earth, including the
Exodus to the refuge zones. For this year 2015 would be the
beginning of wealth and from 2016 onwards the great abundance of
wealth would be release such that it overflowed until like Joseph in
Egypt we control all the wealth of the world (Genesis 39:22-23
whatever has to do with wealth on earth is our doing; Genesis 41:41-
43 we rule over the wealth of the earth; Deuteronomy 28:1-14 the
Lord sets us high above all the nations of the earth and we are the
head over all the nations of the earth).
7. For the expansion into mega ministry (the thousands, tens of
thousands, hundreds of thousands, millions and billions) of
Cathedral of Glory in Australia and Singapore and the planting of
mega churches in Canada, USA, Argentina, Brazil, Korea, China,
South Africa, England, Greece and all the other countries of the
world. For the expansion of Johann Ministries into every media –
audio, video, publications, radio, television, internet, mobile, wifi
and technologies not invented yet – to reach to the millions and
billions in every nation of planet earth, in every language, tongue
and culture such that every single soul born on earth would have the
chance to hear the message and teachings of this end of days; that
the voice that cry at midnight (Ps Johann Melchizedek Peter) would

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 166


be heard by every single ear of those on planet earth from now until
the Rapture and that the bride of Christ, the glorious church of our
Lord Jesus, would prepare herself for the coming of our Lord Jesus.
That the Spirit of Elijah would stir the hearts of the people of God
back to God and two thirds of planet earth are saved (Matthew
28:18-20; Mark 16:15-18; Matthew 15:6). Matthew 24:14 This
gospel of the kingdom will be preached in all the world as a witness
to all the nations, and then the end will come.

Between the two three-day fasts and these seven day fast, we received the
faith to have two thirds of the population of planet earth saved and
converted (at least six billion souls, with three billion made into disciples of
Christ). This was sealed and released on earth on 24th April 2015, during
this seven day fast. Also the new name of Jesus in Revelation 3:12 was
revealed to me on the evening of 28th April 2015.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 167


Prophecy for USA (2016-2027)

This prophecy was delivered on 27th March 2015. (In reinterpretation, I


believe it now applies to the Civil war president).

The Lord shows the next American president


The US election is coming forth in 2016. That’s their campaign. At the
beginning of 2017, the new president takes over from the old. Their
presidents are elected over 4-year terms, i.e. 2017-2020, that is the first
term. The second term will be 2021-2024. The Lord showed that the next
US president who will be elected and who will win the campaign will be the
last president of the United States of America. The next president will be a
Democrat. He will be as popular as John F Kennedy in his first term. This
president, because he is popular, will rule and reign for 2 terms, which will
be 8 years. That takes you to 2024.

We know we are in the years of prosperity from now until 2020.


The years of famine are from 2020 to 2027.
The years of war are from 2027 to 2034.

So, this president is going to rule in these years of prosperity and 4 years
into the years of famine. (Re-interpretation applies it to the famine years
now)

The Lord says that the next president will be allowed to be strong and
powerful because the Lord will allow him to hold back Russia for a time.
Remember the years of prosperity and the years of famine in the time of
Joseph. Those things are going to occur all over again. Remember the
prophecies in the book of Daniel, where the archangel Gabriel (who is here
with us tonight) spoke to him and revealed to him about the 4 empires - the
kingdom of Babylon, followed by the Median-Persian Empire, followed by
the Greek empire, followed by the Roman Empire. Daniel existed and he
was used by God during the Babylonian empire and during the Median-
Persian Empire. After that, the Greek empire came. When Gabriel brought
forth the message, the enemy (the Prince of Persia) tried to hinder Gabriel
from bringing the revelation to Daniel. Michael the archangel came and
Gabriel continue to fly towards Daniel to deliver the revelation. After 21
days of fasting by Daniel, Gabriel came and he brought the message to
Daniel. All these stories are in the book of Daniel.

In the book of Daniel, as Gabriel was about to depart, he mentioned


something, “I must go, because the prince of Greece will come” (Daniel
10:20). What happened was the Median-Persian Empire had not finished
yet. It was supposed to still have a few more kings but the Greek empire

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 168


was trying to come up. All these are the forces of the enemy trying to stir up
the things to come. And so, Gabriel went to push them back, until the full
time of the Median-Persian Empire can be completed.

Russia will be no.1 after the Tsunami


Russia will be strong, and second will be China. But Russia is growing too
fast in strength. So, the angels will push them back. In two ways they will
push them back: By allowing America to have a strong president that will
reign for 2 terms. There are several things that are going to weaken Russia
and that is why this US president is needed.

The Lord says:


"The next US president will be like John F Kennedy in popularity, and he
will know their greatest threat will be Russia. He will rise to rally the
American forces to quell the Russians, but only for a time. This president
that will be Democrat will be very popular on both sides of the political
spectrum. He will also start well and introduce legislations of righteousness
at first. This will not continue throughout his administration but he will start
well. He will lead America to its last peak of power. This last president over
all the 50 states will lead America also into a civil war.”

Now the elections will be in 2016. If you add 8 years, it will only bring you
to 2024. This president lasted until 2027 (the invasion of Spain, as in other
prophecies mentioned earlier) because civil war will break out and martial
law will be declared. Because martial law will exist in his second term, he
will extend his presidency for another 3 years until 2027. (Re-interpretation
does not require this extension now, as it falls in the Civil war period)

The Lord says:


“This new president will be elected twice. In the 2nd term, the civil war will
arise. It will be so bad that the president will be granted war time powers
and elections will be suspended. He will be the last president of all the 50
states of America. All who are leaders who arise after that will be faction
leaders. Under this president, America will reach its final peak of power.
This president will recognize the threat of Russia."

USA secret weapons of mass destruction


Russia wants to be number one too early, so God will use this president to
push Russia back. The reason he is able to do that even though Russia and
China are growing stronger and stronger and in many areas have some
superiority against American weaponry because America is facing more and
more difficulties. The reason USA can push back Russia is because America
will have two secret weapons of mass destruction during the reign of this
president that will keep the Russians and the Chinese at bay.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 169


Russia will be pushed back to arise at an appointed time later.
The Americans and the west will continue to wage a financial economic war
against Russia. They will be allowed to prevail for a period of time. The
ruble (which is the Russian money) will continue to collapse, and its value
will crash.

Right now, with the sanctions, the ruble has taken a hit and it has made it
harder for the average Russian to buy food. During the next year, 2016,
Putin will be forced to step down 2 years ahead of schedule because the
average Russian cannot afford food. There will be hardship in Russia and
nothing that Putin does will be able to prevent the crash. This will cause the
whole of Russia to revolt and in certain places for a time major riots will
arise, so much that they will be starving for a time. And he will not be able
to quell the anger. There will be much rioting for Putin to step down
because they will be angered by him that he has so much and they have
nothing. Putin will be forced by his leaders to step aside early. When this
happens, a new leader will arise in Russia; and Russia will be pushed back
to await its appointed time. (The timing of these have also been pushed back
in re-interpretation of prophecy).

In the meantime, the American president that will be elected end of next
year will grow strong to keep the Russians and Chinese at bay through two
secret weapons. That is the main reason why the American leadership will
become haughty and proud because of these weapons. These weapons are so
catastrophic to the world and they alone possess these weapons at this time.
They are not normal weapons that are even known and allowed by the
governments of the world today. In fact, they are only known by the
Russians and the Chinese in theory through covert reports. This technology
is only known by the Americans. That’s how the Americans can face the
build-up of the Russians and the Chinese militarily and remain proud. Now
the Lord says, He wants to tell us about the story of these secret weapons
because it is the story of these secret weapons that is going to affect the next
8 years to the next 10 years of the future of the world.

The first weapon is a nuclear weapon that is so powerful that it can lay
waste to the whole world. It is like a nation or continent killer, more
powerful than the nuclear weapons that we have that can destroy an entire
city. These are specially configured so that they can destroy an entire
country, an entire continent, an entire world.

This weapon is off the books. It is held in the most secret of US


organizations. In a map, the Lord showed where these special nukes are
kept. They are kept in a few places in the USA, and they are kept in rotation.
But one of the places that it is kept is on the continent of Europe. Then the

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 170


Lord said, there is one satellite that is now operating in outer space that is of
the highest technology and will warehouse many of these nuclear weapons,
and it is able to target and fire any place in the world. Because of this, the
enemies of USA do not dare to attack.

The second weapon is a bio-weapon. There was a vision of a missile with a


bio-weapon symbol — bio-hazard. This second weapon is one of the most
horrible bio-weapon ever invented by man. This weapon that the United
States built is the most secret and is only known to other nations in theory
by the covert reports they have discovered. This weapon is designed to wipe
out all human life. However, this weapon has a cure that is invented by the
Americans. If this weapon is released, it is so toxic that it will destroy
mankind if the Lord Jesus didn’t intervene. Only those with the cure can
live. The Lord says not to worry - because even if the Americans fire this
weapon, Jesus will not allow this to destroy all mankind. Jesus will allow a
certain measure of the weapon to be controlled.

However, the Russians and the Chinese do not know that Jesus will not
allow this. So, they are afraid that this weapon will be used. Even the allies
of the United States of America are not sure how they will be protected in
the event of another war, if these weapons are used. None of the nations of
the world can confirm these weapons exist, or what their limitations are.
However, the Americans will leak just enough information to keep everyone
in fear - that it is not just a theory although they don’t prove it.

But these weapons do exist. They are not theory. The Americans will have a
protocol on how to use these weapons: If the nations of the world rise up
and attack the United States of America, and the United States of America is
at stake of losing in an all-out war, then it will use these weapons as a
deterrent measure. This is the protocol that exists.

How will the nations of the world beat America?


They will use this protocol against the Americans. They will find out the
American protocol, and during the coming civil war in the United States,
America will move the nuclear and biological secret weapons from the
mainland of the United States and put them in submarines until the civil war
is stopped; when the situation is deemed safe to bring the weapons back to
the mainland. The satellite will not be messed with, and the ones in Europe
will stay. The one in Europe is a strategic counter measure against Russia.
During the civil war, the bio-weapons are not allowed anywhere in the
United States because it is so deadly and they don’t want to risk anything
happening within their own soil.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 171


The Russians and the Chinese will know about this protocol and have a
secret arrangement against the United States to fund and help create a civil
war. The Russians will not directly fight the United States of America, but
will be funding a proxy war through China, and at the right time make a
deal with the European Union to destroy the Americans. They will use
propaganda and buy off government leaders at every level of government.
This strategy is well planned and as of today is already in effect.

There are many USA government leaders who are bought off by the
Chinese and some by the Russians. They will pretend to do the best for the
United States but will be selling secrets, obeying orders, making deals of all
kinds to their own destruction. Each faction will have its own agenda and
will play its cards against the other for dominance of the world, and the
destruction of United States.

The United States and Europe will be allies until the years of famine, when
a wedge will be driven between them. They will not directly fight until
China attacks USA in 2027. Then, Europe will attack while the Chinese
play their part in the plan. Europe will have a strategy against USA, Russia
and China. Russia will have its own strategy against Europe, against
America, against China. China will have its own strategy against Europe,
against America, against Russia. Each one is playing against each other and
that will be the world that you will be living in during the next coming
decade.

Finally in 2027 (when the serpent leaves USA to go to Spain as in the 7


Thunders prophecy), the 10 tigers will come and bite off its head. And then
the dog will come and attack the naval base that is over the eastern side of
the India-Pakistan peninsula. Thus, the war years in 2027 will begin. The
nations will not face each other directly but they will plot and plan against
each other.

The Russians will be building their weapon arsenal and work to find out the
secrets of these two secret weapons to disable them. They will make a deal
with China to give the lands of the USA to the Chinese to dominate once the
civil war has weakened the nation and the secret weapon protocol goes into
effect. The first goal of Russia and China is to find out where the designated
submarines are and destroy them before they are able to fire the secret
weapons. Then, the next goal of the factions against America is to destroy
the satellite where they warehouse the special nukes in space and destroy it.

The problem here is this: Europe will be allied with the USA. However,
during the time of famine when USA invades Spain, Europe will make a
deal with Russia and China to use the banking system against the USA and

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 172


provide the secret information they need to sink the submarines and destroy
the satellite. Europe will allow the Chinese to be the attack dog to attack
USA. The Chinese will destroy the submarines, two in the Pacific and one
in the Atlantic. Once these three submarines which are specially equipped
are destroyed, the bio-weapons will be destroyed, and most of the secret
nukes. Then Europe will be pivotal in helping the Chinese to destroy the
secret nukes in space by providing them information that the USA gives to
their allies about the satellite. The Chinese will attack the Pacific fleet first,
destroy the two Pacific submarines and sink them and at the same time
destroy the satellite in space. Once this happens, they set sail for the Atlantic
fleet to destroy the rest of the USA fleet. As they go and fight in the
Atlantic, Europe will surprise attack the Chinese.

The goal of Europe is to wait until the last American special submarine with
the special weapons is destroyed by the Chinese. Europe will pretend to be
neutral until the last moments, when the Chinese have sunk the last
submarine and destroyed most of the American fleet; completely destroy the
American naval power. Then when the Chinese have done this with some
loss, Europe will attack the Chinese counterparts, and destroy the power of
their navy and push the Chinese back but only because at the same time,
Europe will surprise attack the American base in Europe to get hold of the
last remaining secret weapon that is in the continent of Europe. And they
will use that to keep the Russians and the Chinese in retreat. The Chinese
will turn back temporarily defeated.

Russia will be waiting to collect the spoils of war. They will recover the
weaponry in the sunken submarines and then realize that Europe does not
have the ability to crack the American system protocol so fast. They will
know it because Europe will play their hand first. Remember the prophecy
about the seven meteorites that will hit Russia, with two hitting the areas
where the two fallen angels are released? After the meteorites hit Russia,
Europe will take that chance to attack Russia. When they attack Russia,
Russia will know they don’t have the technology to use the secret weapons;
which is why they resort to conventional war in attacking Russia. Russia
will attack back.

Russia will have bought and paid for many American scientists and military
officers to help them. Once the American naval power is destroyed, it will
be the culmination of American defeat. They will never rise again after
2027. By this time the United States will have been destroying each other
from within. They will not see the secret attack coming or believe it is
possible because they are too distracted and spread out to be able to see this
coming. They will think their allied relationship with Europe and their

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 173


economic relationship with China will keep them from being attacked and
from the war. They are wrong.

The United States will engage in civil war because they will be pushed from
the outside influences, politically, economically and on every front and
internally. The USA will be more destructive to itself than Russia or China
can ever do to America. State will fight against state in some regions. Two
main sides before this will cause much destruction to each other and their
populations so much so that the Chinese investment in the USA will be
completely destroyed. And they will find difficulty in securing their
investments and there is not much worth saving.

At this time, the Chinese will be allowed to attack the USA by Europe
provoking them to be the attack dog. America will be starving and under
martial law, fighting each other and killing one another. In one last attempt
to try to unite the nation, the president will go to Spain as peacekeeper to try
to secure food. That is when the Europeans will decide to go forward to
betray their allies. Europe’s main strategy against the USA is to break up
their banking system and provide secret military intelligence to the Chinese
to thwart the Russians, not knowing the Chinese have made a secret deal
with the Russians to destroy USA and divide the spoils. The Russians will
get back their former Soviet territory and the Chinese will get Taiwan and
major American investment centres.

Europe will not see this coming. They will think they have secured the
power to keep Russia at bay and also have destroyed Chinese naval power.
They will be wrong. Once Europe defeats China and pushes them back, they
will be at odds with Russia. They are no more Americans in the way and the
secret weapon belongs to them. However, Europe will realize they have a
secret weapon they cannot use. So, they will pretend that they know how to
use it. This strategy will work until they attack Russia. They will be
mobilizing their military to establish dominance. When Russia is hit by the
meteorites, they will decide it is time to hit at Russia. As they momentarily
win, conquering all the way to Moscow, Russia will figure out that Europe
did not have the technology to the USA weapons and know that they can’t
use it. Then Russia will attack back and defeat them. As they are defeated,
the Tsunami takes place. 2029 comes along.

The Coming Civil War in USA

Then the Lord showed a map, I saw at first a large Map of America, The
west side was coloured red and had a massive soldier figure from the
revolutionary war facing the east side he held an old time musket and
bayonet toward the east side. Then the East side was in blue and had the

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 174


same kind of revolutionary soldier with old time musket and bayonet facing
the West side. The two sides were divided by what looked like lightning. I
saw the bayonets were shinny and each looked like they were charging each
other.

Then the Lord said, this civil war will not be like any before. It will be
worse and there will be more than two sides fighting each other. Then the
Lord showed a new map of the USA. He showed that there would be five
sections, every section He showed became highlighted as group of states
that formed together as one. First He showed Texas and the states to the
right all the way to Florida and including Florida; they turned red and the
Lord said this is the Southern States Faction. Then from the main line down
where (it looked like the original 13 states from a distance plus some more)
all the way up to the Southern States faction line and it was highlighted in
Blue and the Lord said this is the Eastern States Faction. Then the Lord
showed the West which included California and the west Coast all the way
to Texas and said this is the West States Faction. Then the Lord showed the
North West States section; it was above the West part. Then there was an
open space in the mid to northern states; it had no colour. And the Lord said
that these sections will not be in one group. Some will be fighting each other
and some will be allied with others. This is the chaos zone and where the
Civil war will start from. It was hard to tell the lines that divided the states
because these sections became colours and it looked like new boundary

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 175


lines were drawn. Almost like the zones in some areas split the state lines,
like the Southern group section looked like part of Oklahoma was in the
Southern States Faction and then part of Oklahoma was in the Chaos
section. The impression was that the border lines weren’t exactly set and
changed due to the fighting. It was the basic groupings that needed to be
seen.

The Lord said the timing of the Civil war will be in the second term of the
new president. Then the Lord showed what will lead up to the civil war.
This time will be the time of the riots which will lead into anarchy which
will lead into the civil war. All these times are subject to the prayer of the
Church. If the church does not pray, the years of the riots will come two
years early into the years of prosperity, which will then start the time of
anarchy which will begin the years of the Civil war earlier and will prolong
the time of the Civil war. If it is prayed and pushed back the time of the
riots, anarchy and civil war will be pushed back and held in to the years of
the famine. The prayer is to prevent it from starting earlier. (Note: There
was a call to a three day fast for USA from Saturday March 28th to Monday
March 30th 2015, and during the fast, the Lord said on Sunday that from the
first day of prayer, He has already answered and the years of the civil war
will be pushed back to begin only during the second term of the last
president of USA).

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 176


Then the Lord said that when the time of the riots starts there will be 5
things that will cause this. The first is the price of food will increase and
there will be a lack of food. The second is racial divide that will come. The
Lord continued and said this racial divide will be strategies that are pushed
to divide the nation into civil war from Russia and China. There will be paid
factions in the media and all kinds of people who will promote racism and
racial divide, every colour will be pitted against each other: white vs black,
black vs white, Hispanic vs black, etc. It will be promoted and help given to
raise up leaders and fund leaders in each division to create race war. Then
the third is rich vs poor, there will be an attack on the wealth of America,
the upper middle and lower middle class will disappear. It will become the
Poor vs the Rich. This will happen when the American monetary system
collapses. The wealth of many will fail and billionaires will be turned into
paupers begging for food. The dollar will fail and be replaced with a new
form of money. This will coincide with the price of food inflation that will
happen and destroy the wealth of the land. Many middle class will lose their
homes and be in financial ruin. The fourth is freedom will be reduced and
taken away. The government will slowly introduce measures that will try to
quell violence and rioting. In the time of the lack of food, the government
will start to take control of the natural resources and production of America
and start seizing food from its citizens, then it will take the water, and lands,
and start to even go to the extent of taking control of the private sectors of
factories, and production until it is all state controlled directly or indirectly.
It will enact a repeal of guns and go house to house to take food, guns and
supplies for the preservation of peace. And then it will ration supplies to
citizens. In this time freedoms will be reduced. And Americans will fight
this because it will be different in every Faction. The final thing is terrorism
will be released. China and Russia will fund terrorism secretly and help
them enter major cities that are rioting. The terrorist will begin to blow up
public areas and other places killing many and unleash anarchy into these
major cities. At first these riots will be controllable but once this happens
the cities will be turned into war zones. Such that they will be turned into
war zones ruled by mafia, drug lords, and military leaders.

Then the Lord showed me the new president. The Lord said during the time
of riots the President will be used to take more and more freedom and will
transfer the private resources of the nation to the government. This will all
be under the desire to quell the riots and violence and fighting and respond
to the famine. Then the Lord said during this time the Government will
align with the Apostate Church and freedom of speech and righteousness
will be fought against. The Lord said the riots will hit a point where they
begin to take freedom away from citizens. In an effort to stop the violence,
the government will promote the doctrine of the Apostate church and align
with it. They will promote false love and all the abominations of the

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 177


Apostate Church in the attempt to keep people distracted and tied up in
fulfilling their fleshly desires. Drugs, fornication, prostitution and many
other horrible things will be legalized and promoted through the land as to
keep control. This will also cause the American government to outlaw
religious teaching and teachers that are righteous and label them as religious
extremists and they will be declared terrorists. At this time things will grow
from bad to worse and the more they release evil in the land the worse
things will get.

The landscape of USA was shown. An angel with wings who had a sword
drawn the river. Then the river started to dry up and stopped flowing such
that the river bed was dry and cracked. I then started to see all the water in
America dry up. I saw many Angels going through the land striking the
water supplies in regions. I then saw other of the same kind of Angels go
and strike things. One Angel struck the trees, One Angel struck a field of
wheat, one struck the green grass, and I saw the land turn from lush green to
brown till I didn’t see any vegetation is was like a desert.

This message is delivered together with other messages that prepare the
Bride of Christ to be ready for His Coming. Please also listen to the other
positive messages as to how to be part of this revival that is beginning this
year with creative signs and wonders. Many other things have been revealed
and many messages from God have been delivered to the people of God. In
the light of this and in obedience to God, we are launching COG, USA on 7
February 2016 with Sunday services followed by miracle services where
God will confirm His endtime word with signs and wonders (John 10:37-38;
14:11-12).

The Lord is coming for His Bride, go out to meet Him (Matthew 25:6)

Ps Johann Melchizedek Peter

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 178


Map of Seven Meteorites hitting Russia and surroundings in 2027

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 179


Rough Map showing Earthquake areas and Tsunami in 2029
Note: The red ‘C’ crescent shaped line to the North-East of Philippines is
the size, shape and epicentre of the Tsunami wave of about 100 storeys tall -
longitude 165 latitude to 45 and the bottom curve longitude 165 to latitude 0
(equator); and the middle curve was around longitude 140 and latitude 17.5
(around the Northern Mariana islands)

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 180


Summary of End Time Message

Part 1: Summary of Events

The beginning of this end time message and move started on 9th February
2012, when one of our potential missionaries (originally was praying about
being a missionary to Middle East supported by our church), David Lim,
was told by Archangel Uriel to visit the historical site of the seven churches
in the book of Revelations. It was at Pergamos on February 9, 2012 that we
were informed that the glory of God has come down to earth in the symbolic
re-taking of the place. Apparently, it was the devil’s symbolic throne for
about 3000 years (Revelation 2:13).

There were several requirements from the archangels to do various prayer


walks and altars in five countries which also include a group trip to Madaba,
Jordan in August 2012. There was a visitation of 30 archangels from various
parts of the Universe in Madaba and Mukawir, Jordan. On 14 November
2012, the Seven Thunder message that was hidden in the book of Revelation
(Revelation 10:4) was released. This special meeting was called for by the
angels a week prior to its release and the meeting was not open to everyone
but only to a select group, although the contents of the message was
released to the public at large. The contents of the message are summarized
in this brief. The altar building trips to various countries continued
throughout 2013. We were told by the archangels of two important things to
do in the following years: altar buildings in seven different countries that
must be completed in three years if possible and must not take five years to
complete (we completed it in four years) and a secret trip to be made to pray
simultaneously in three places – Moscow, Rome, Tel Aviv - after receiving
an anointing on 9th February 2015.

In 22 September 2013, the first Seven Thunder Prophet, David Lim, tried
to remove the apostolic position of Ps Peter and takeover the Singapore
church, and assume leadership of the move of God. It was not successful
and was dealt with, and Ps Peter continued to guide the church through the
crisis and continued the end time move. During all night prayer on 20th
December 2013, Ps Peter encountered the Seven Thunders Archangel of
Revelations chapter 10, and was told to changed his name to John. On the
following Sunday, 22nd December 2013, Melchizedek the Cherub came and
told him to add Melchizedek to his name. After praying through as to how
to add the two new names, and with the Holy Spirit’s guidance, the name
Johann Melchizedek Peter became Ps Peter’s new name. After taking on
this new name, Ps Johann Melchizedek Peter was told to go to Pegamos and
have the new name sealed. While in Pergamos on that secret trip, Ps Johann

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 181


M Peter was told he has now come to accept his role in the end time call and
that he was the voice that cry at midnight and the man from the East. He
revealed that to those who went to Jordan in September 2014.

In 2014 and 2015, the various altar buildings in the seven countries were
completed, and there were more people from the second generation that
joined the move. Amongst them were Jehudah who had the download of the
Twelve and Ps Johann as the Scribe, and his position in heaven. Arion
joined the trip to Jordan in September 2014 and grew rapidly in visions to
become the second Seven Thunders Prophet, encountering visitations from
the Lord and from the Archangel Uriel. God gave him more details of the
Seven Thunders prophecy especially pertaining to USA civil war and the
coming great Exodus and what it entails. The period of 2015 to 2016 was
the establishment of the second generation especially of the twelve and the
second generations’ role in the end time move and their relationship with Ps
Johann Melchizedek Peter.

At the end of 2016, when the specifics of the USA prophecy on O Malley
becoming the USA president did not come to pass, Ps Johann relooked at
the downloads of Arion (who had at some time assumed the name of Aruel)
and noted that like the first seven thunders prophet (who had a dream of the
pages of a prophetic book where one side was clear and the other side was
all jumbled), there were some things that were interrupted in Arion’s
download frequently and thus the missing pieces plus some soul elements
might have caused the missed accuracy of the USA prophecies, plus other
things missed like the three miracles, etc. Ps Johann sought to work one on
one with Arion to help him accept his inaccuracies as also a personal thing.
He also noted that Arion’s entrance into fulltime ministry was also from
Arion’s own download but had flowed along with it as it was a condition for
the July 2016 outpouring (in which angels Michael, Gabriel, Raphael and
Phanuel did make an appearance together with Uriel, as witnessed by a
person who had open visions). Now that the USA prophecy did not come to
pass, he told Arion to pray about going back to work while waiting for the
prophecies to come to pass, as Ps Johann himself would have to delay his
coming to USA, too. In his heart, Ps Johann would still help him with
whatever offerings coming in but did not want to have a situation where
there was insufficient funds, as Arion had a big family to feed, especially as
he would not be there personally to keep raising funds to support Arion. It
was only for a short period of two years or so before things build up in his
estimation. Arion proposed to take two month’s salary and then look for a
job, which Ps Johann agreed. On January 6, 2017, Arion sent a mass email
to everyone with his resignation, which Ps Johann only found out via the
mass email.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 182


With the departure of Arion who had stood in the place of the second
Seven Thunders prophet, Ps Johann Melchizedek Peter once again had to
guide everyone through the crisis and bring this end time move forward and
help everyone to understand which part is fully accurate and which part
need greater clarity and might have been received like the first seven
thunders prophet’s prophetic book, where one page is fine and the opposite
page is in jumble. Having taken time to look through everything of the
downloads of both the first seven thunders and the second seven thunders,
Ps Johann Melchizedek Peter has summarised the most important aspects of
the Seven Thunders prophecy of these end times, which remain true and is
an end time call to the present church to wake up and prepare for the
Rapture, the Second Coming of Jesus for His Bride.

Part 2: Summary of Events (some occurred, some future prophecies)


The events are only summarised listing and greater details can be found in
the various end time prophetic teachings.

Date Description of Event Seen by


2004 Birth of False Prophet 1st 7Th
9 Feb 2012 Coming of Pergamos glory to planet earth 1st 7Th
14 Feb 2012 Unveiling of Seven Thunders Prophecy 1st 7Th
*Main points: Demise of USA, Birth of Anti-Christ, Call to prepare, Call to
heed God’s end time warning, Judgment on church & world
9 Feb 2014 Ordaining of Johann Melchizedek Peter as Voice that cry at
Midnight
18 Sep 2014 Midnight Hour spiritually occurred, separation begins - JMP
18 Sep 2015 1st & 2nd Four Living Creatures chosen, and
some of 12 chosen 2nd 7Th
Nov 2015 Birth of Anti Christ 1st 7Th, JMP
st
4 July 2016 1 part Outpouring 2nd 7Th
9 Feb 2017 1st part of Melchizedek blessings released JMP
2020 End of Prosperity Years, Beginning of Famine Years - JMP
2021 Democrat President in USA (date brought forward) - 2nd 7Th
2022 Exodus begins 1st,2nd7Th, JMP
2021-2022 Start of USA Civil war 2nd 7Th
Feb 2020 Visit to Pergamos to release the greater glory 1st 7Th
2022-2026 1st super growth of COG 1st 7Th, JMP
2nd 7Th saw sections of these events without dates.
2027 Meteorite hits Russia, release of two fallen angels - 1st 7Th
2027 USA attacked by other nations, breaks apart 1st & 2nd 7Th
2027-2029 Three horns versus Russia, African wars,
South American wars 1st 7Th

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 183


2022-2029 Some events in Exodus 2nd 7Th
Feb 2029 To visit Laodicea, releasing the Spirit of Mercy - 1st 7Th
2029 Major Worldwide Earthquake & Tsunami 1st,2nd7Th, JMP
Post 2029 Some events after Tsunami, humanitarian
work by COG 1st 7Th
2034 War between Russia and China 1st 7Th
2040-2048 Rise of Beast, and confrontation with
Glorious church 1st,2nd7Th, JMP
2048 Beast and Anti-Christ goes to Rome 1st 7Th, JMP
March 2055 Beast and Anti-Christ invited to Israel 1st 7Th, JMP
2056 Plans begin on the third temple 1st 7Th, JMP
Visions of Third Temple, saw two domes represent peace &
harmony
Mar 2057 Beginning of building of Third Temple 1st 7Th, JMP
nd
2055-2060 2 Supergrowth of COG 1st 7Th, JMP
Sept 2060 Completion of Third Temple 1st 7Th, JMP
19 Sept 2060 Translation of JMP 1st,2nd7Th, JMP
2060-2063 Final march of the 2nd Gen, withdrawal
to Australia 2nd 7Th

Part 3: Conclusion and Observations

One of the observations that I have found when I went through all the
various downloads was that the first Seven Thunders has been given a broad
brush to show the overall events and pictures. The second Seven Thunders
has especially seen visions relevant to the second generation and also
greater details relevant to his personal work, for example the details and
causes of the USA civil war, the details of what occurred in the signs and
wonders done during the period of super growth – signs of Moses, etc. The
second Seven Thunders has also seen details of the Exodus like
transportation and also the work relevant with the Twelve as they worked in
teams. There was a change in the work of the second generation with the
departure of the first Seven Thunders, as his son was no longer relevant to
the second generation. Thus God started showing more details of the second
generation and their formation in between the period between the two Seven
Thunders, via Jehudah and later on also through the second Seven Thunders.

In a nutshell, the message of the end times and the hidden Seven Thunders
Prophecy that is revealed in modern times is that:
1. We have moved into the last generation that see the Rapture and the
Coming of our Lord Jesus, with the demise of USA as a sign of
Babylon falling.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 184


2. The antichrist and the false prophet have already been born, and
even the arrival of the 144,000 Jewish people sanctified for the time
of Tribulation under Enoch and Elijah have already begun to be born
in batches.
3. There is a separation that has taken place and the wheat will be
separated from the tares; the wise virgins from the foolish virgins.
4. We are to prepare to be part of the glorious church of Ephesians
chapters 4 and 5.
5. God is outlining His strategy and work and choosing His vessels
who will take their place in this end time spiritual army that He is
raising.
6. Everything of the details of prophecies, country names, events, etc.
are just demarcation points and milestones for us to recognize and
know how to be at the right place at the right time doing the right
thing.
7. The end time message is a call to all countries, churches, ministries,
and every believer and Christian to get ready to meet our Lord Jesus
Christ.

The overall stories and pictures will be clearer as we progress


chronologically through the milestones marked in the second section above.
Every event, every choice made, every human story of failure or success
will form part of the story of this end time move. We are living parables and
living stories that will be read from eternity. Some parts of the story
unfolding might look difficult and unfathomable now, but when read
through lives of failures and successes, we will see the predestination and
the foreknowledge of God who uses every success and failure to reveal His
attributes and story of grace and mercy and power.

In conclusion, be the story of triumph and victory that God wants to write
in your life. We are all parts and pieces of His divine revelation of His
attributes and His nature. Only through our lives lived on earth can that
story be told and shared for all eternity. Keep strong and focus in walking
with the Lord with first love, as you find your place and destiny in this end
time move. Fulfil all that is in the book written of your life on earth (Psalm
139:16). May we all be able to run the race well and say at the end like our
Lord Jesus that we have finished the work that He has given to us (Hebrews
12:2; John 17:4). Amen.

© Copyright 2017 Johann Melchizedek Peter. All rights reserved. 185

You might also like